#angst of course my best friend
Explore tagged Tumblr posts
Text

exploding stars
#my art#fanart#yin thinks#hsr#hsr fanart#honkai star rail#dancae#caelus#dan heng#trailblazer#of course my saturation gets fried#angst#angst of course my best friend#dan heng: yeah my bf is a walking talking nuclear bomb what about it
345 notes
·
View notes
Text
i made another au!!!!!!!!!
calling this one the prince geo au for simplicity, hereâs an infodump about it!!
vangelis, whilst investigating the dungeons, came across a quite young kid who was all alone and in bad condition, having been completely abandoned by the geckles and the munce due to being a hybrid. he wound up taking this kid in, naming him geo and raising him alongside his daughter vania as the prince of shintaro.
up until master of the mountain, vangelis is, to geo and vania, a pretty damn good parent, aside from the fact that he forces geo to wear a mask in public most of the time in order to hide his face. geo also later finds out that his dad was essentially using him for sympathy points like âi took in this freak child that nobody else wanted!!â to make him look better to the public
the set-up to motm is the same yâknow itâs vaniaâs birthday party Yippee! and cole and vania become friends pretty quickly and stuff because theyâre the duo ever (more on them later) but. cole finds himself especially drawn to the quiet, meek prince geo
then OH NO they get banished to The Hole and geoâs mask conveniently breaks!!! cole, who was already kinda in love with him without realising it, almost loses it but geo and vania at first interpret his reaction as being utterly horrified (something he quickly corrects (and dances around admitting that he finds geo insanely hot))
pretty much the same stuff happens but with added cole and geo gradually falling in love with eachother + geo and vania slowly realising that their dad is a terrible person. i imagine that vaniaâs understandably protective over her brother - everyone mistakes her for being the older sibling when in reality sheâs like 1-2 years younger than him? when she gets geo to admit his crush on cole she starts teasing him to all hell about it (and gives cole a mini shovel talk when him and geo get together)
anyways, geo and vangelis wind up having a massive argument when everything is revealed about him, and one idea i had is that vangelis ends up lashing out at him in some way and injuring him because heâs supposed to be his quiet, pushover son. cole and vania are ready to flipping murder vangelis for that because 1. thatâs vaniaâs brother right there and she is his scary protective sister /aff and 2. thatâs coleâs boyfriend!!
one thing to note is that, even though geoâs the older one of the two, vania is the heir to the throne. i imagine that vangelis gave the excuse that geo isnât his bio kid, when in reality itâs because heâs a geckle/munce
at the end of motm, geo leaves shintaro and his role as royalty as he realises that that kind of life isnât for him, a choice that vania fully supports him with. he goes off on his own adventures (and is later reunited with cole after the merge in the land of lost things, and gets an elemental power!!)
#i yapped so hard here#but. holy flip#of course i had to have shintaro siblings (geo and vania) angst in this#the siblings ever#vania crashes out when vangelis lashes out at geo#cole and vania are BEST FRIENDS in this because them as besties is UNDERRATED AS HELL#ninjago bring back vania and my life is YOURS#prince!geo#prince geo au#ninjago#lego ninjago#ninjago dragons rising#ninjago motm#master of the mountain#ninjago master of the mountain#ninjago geo#geo ninjago#geo finder#ninjago cole#cole ninjago#cole brookstone#lostshipping#geodeshipping#cole x geo#ninjago vania#vania ninjago#princess vania#queen vania#ninjago au#shintaro siblings
46 notes
·
View notes
Text
I do genuinely love Scott McCall he's my boy my sweet puppy dog. I also love Sheriff Stilinski who is actually so competent and full of love for his son.
Unfortunately for both of them my brain is being devoured by worms that love to see Stiles Stilinski experience such incredible angst so 'Bad Friend Scott' and 'Bad Parent Sheriff Stilinski' are tags I frequent too often.
#teen wolf#scott mccall#sheriff stilinski#noah stilinski#stiles stilinski#my brain craves angst#i must see my favorite characters be put through the ringer to feel anything#scott and the sheriff are the most important people in stiles' life of course some of the best angst involves those two#scott is a good friend#sheriff stilinski is a great father
33 notes
·
View notes
Text
babe wake up a new Venti-coded song just droppped
âIâm as sober as a drunk.
Iâm as high as rock bottom.
Free as a man with his hands handcuffed to the bar.â
#weâre gonna ignore the fact that this song released in 2020 okay. itâs new(ish) to Me and i want an excuse to post about Venti#venti#genshin impact#venti genshin impact#genshin impact venti#venti gi#music stuff#Sevenâs Blorbo Songs#Spotify#weâre also gonna ignore that the majority of the song is relationship/breakup focused#the three lines i quoted up there are so Venticore to me that the rest is inconsequential#but if ur deranged enough like me then im sure thereâs a way to interpret the other lyrics to be about Nameless Bard#if ur in the mood for some Extra angst yâknow#actually the more i think about it. thatâs actually a very fitting way to interpret the other lines!#like. instead of trying to drown the memory of some ex heâs drinking to cope with the loss of his best friend :)))#or if u wanna interpret them as having been something more than friends then this works too. i like to think wisp Venti had a crush on N.B.#OR given that lots of ppl headcanon Venti and Zhongli to be exes you could Also interpret it as being about him! many options here actually#maniacal laughter#i love angst so much#anyways. go listen or read the lyrics and tell me if iâm wrong but. this is Venticore to me#like not to play into the done-to-death Alcoholic Venti trope but. while thatâs not Everything he is itâs still part of him#and i think thereâs something to the whole concept of the God of Freedom being chained down by addiction. yâknow?#anyways *adds yet another self-indulgent country song to my Venti playlist*#thereâs a reason itâs been sitting at 13 followers for like. two years. (bc i wonât stop adding my niche songs that make sense to no one)#but then again thatâs 90% of my playlists anyway lmao#iâve had Venti on the brain a lot lately since i started writing a new oneshot that has once again turned into a full-blown songfic#and given that it feels like something is trying to claw its way out of my uterus rn and i actually have a free evening to rest#methinks iâll curl up in bed and finish writing that fic so i can finally share it with the world#and it will probably flop as hard as my last Venti fic did but thatâs okay bc i do this out of love for Venti and nothing can stop me đ€#anyway that fic isnât directly related to This song but i do explore Alcoholism Themes in the fic bc of course i do
10 notes
·
View notes
Text
s1 episode 16 "young at heart" thoughts
oh this was an episode that had me on EDGE. and then also laughing because it was so ridiculous. that man grew salamander hands.
"i still don't get it. what does this have to do with us?" "robbing a jewelry store is a federal crime" (dana scully, in the flattest voice you have ever heard) "thanks" <- yeah i did laugh so hard i had to rewind at that point. so what!
mulder greets his old pal by singing his name... never beating the nerd allegations
(and clearly this is normal for them, because his friend says "i hate when you do that" which makes it even funnier)
! MULDER LORE REVEAL ! he had his first case with the FBI at the age of 28! something went terribly wrong because he wouldn't shoot the robber, and the bad guy killed another agent! he has been blaming himself for this for years! and the robber, who was thought to be dead, is somehow back and stalking him!
when scully learns about this, she tells him that she thinks he did the right thing by not taking the shot, but this makes him VERY angry. he slams the door on her, and ran away to watch the dead guy's kid play football. ouch! that's gotta hurt. he tends to be very under control, so seeing him like this was jarring.
then he finds out he's being followed while still at the football game and screams "I'LL GET YOU, YOU BASTARD!" which had to make the kid's parents feel deeply uncomfortable
as if mulder hasn't suffered enough in this episode with the guy who killed his coworker and vowed to kill him coming back, the very same man to whom mulder earlier sang to as a greeting just said that "spooky mulder" is a "liability" and "an embarrassment" to the FBI. at this point in the episode my jaw dropped!
(he doesn't seem to take too much offense to this- instead seeing it as his pal warning him that maybe the guy who is stalking him is in the fbi- but i took deep offense on his behalf!)
the next scene we got was a flashback to the trial of the robber and i wrote "is this lawyer the same woman that played eve in the eve episode" but i don't have any immediate intention of finding out if that is true or not... but wouldn't it be funny if it was.
mulder stops his testimony and screams at the robber that he should "die like an animal, you son of a bitch", to which i wrote in my notes, was "another jaw drop moment"!
i love getting to see the composed character lose it. it's clear that mulder took this very, very personally, and that it haunts him. love to see an insight into the past and love that he looked the same in the flashback but with a slightly different hairstyle.
then medical scully comes into play when she requests the dead guy's records and notices that it seems impossible for him to have died of a heart attack if he was in perfect health a few months before... hmm...
(i love when scully goes Doctor Mode it is one of life's simple pleasures)
mulder was still at work at 10:45 at night in the next scene which is adding fuel to scully's theory that he doesn't have a life lmao
but then the robber breaks in and kills his friend, inflicting even more pain upon mulder, who has really had to deal with a lot, and this can only intensify the guilt he was already facing for not shooting the bad guy so many years earlier. it also shows that he remembers the details of those around him- the ages of the other guy's kids, their hobbies, that this friend was writing a novel, that his wife had died of cancer- all of which haunt him further
(also just evidence of his fantastic memory but this is the Sad edition of that fact)
scully does more doctor detective work: the guy who proclaimed our robber dead lost his license for doing unethical experimentation!
next we had what i wrote in my notes in all caps as a "SCULLY GLASSES MOMENT!" where she was writing her case notes and saying there was NO EVIDENCE to support mulder's theory that this fellow was de-aging himself. but someone was breaking into her apartment! and it was accompanied by eerie latin chanting!!!! oh i was stressed!!! he got away in the nick of time when the evil doctor showed up at her door!!!!
(also noticed she has a little fabric cat hanging on her door <3)
so the doctor gave this robber man salamander hands. mulder seems naturally disgusted by this but scully is in Doctor Mode and finds that fascinating. i find myself somewhere in between the two, laughing at the mental picture.
but the salamander robber stalker man stole the evil doctor's research, and is now bargaining with the US government to sell them the secrets of anti-aging! doctors hate this one man's simple tricks!
(mulder is very angry about this. i sympathize, but also feel that dealing with a salamander murderer de-aging guy is probably one of the less morally dubious things the FBI has gotten up to in its time, so make of that what you will)
scully comes out of the shower with wet hair <3 sopping wet kitten <3
(honestly she needs to move like people keep breaking into her place and it's stressing me tf out)
so now she has to be the bait because the bad guy robber stalker salamander is coming to her friend's recital! and she's nervous so mulder winks at her across the room. ohhhhhh my gosh. oh man. someone hold me.
(and dana scully is the kind of friend who goes to her pal's cello recital <3)
despite the stalking and killing salamander man has done, mulder is insistent on taking this guy alive, which speaks to his moral virtue but also provided foreshadowing for what would happen next: evil salamander hands takes scully's friend hostage thinking mulder won't shoot, but he DOES. and the eerie latin chanting returns while this occurs. more guilt! more guilt! that's what latin chanting is about!
scully is also shot at, and she looks down at her chest, sees a bullet in it, and sighs deeply. which would frankly also be my reaction. turns out she was in 8 layers of kevlar, so she's hurting, but she's okay. but i laughed a lot. ugh. shot at again. another day at the office for scully.
she then tells mulder she's proud of him for shooting that guy knowing about his reservations in the past. it is a full circle moment. scully was proud of him for not shooting all those years ago and now she is proud of him for pulling the trigger. she recognized the growth it took in each of those moments and the sorrow that lies behind mulder's seemingly aloof exterior.
overall, a really great episode!! i enjoyed it in both its seriousness and campiness of a de-aging salamander man being our monster of the week. seeing fox mulder tormented with puns about his name gave us a good look into his past that he seems to keep at a distance, and allowed us to examine his moral qualms with the need to pull the trigger and how he holds onto that Guilt that composes the core of his character. the guilt that compels him to do what he does, devote his life to tracking down extraterrestrials so he can find his sister, that guilt for failing to keep people close to him safe, and that guilt that comes from never being able to fully be in control of a shifting world around you. he Needs to protect and he cannot do that all the time and that eats him alive. a very compelling gentleman to me personally.
#i'd be lying though if seeing wet haired slash glasses scully in her little apartment with a cat on the door wasn't a highlight for me#or how her face lit up at a guy growing salamander hands#or how she sighed deeply at the bullet in her chest. or flatly told mulder thank you for explaining the obvious.#turning into a dana scully lovebot and i have no problems with that <3#of course i'm seated for some mulder angst as well do not get me wrong!!! i love getting to see behind the Silly Guy curtain#and if anyone called him a liability around me i would throw hands like yeah that's spooky mulder and he's my best friend#juni's x files liveblog#1x16#the x files#txf
15 notes
·
View notes
Note
also can we get a hint on what the one shot is about đ„č
Wellll I'm going to start off by saying that it's only around 2,000 words and 10/10 not my best work, it is very subpar BUT I am excited to have finished something that wasn't part of a series or a chaptered fic and am therefore going to aggressively and enthusiastically share it on the internet đ It's just a little angsty oneshot about Fictional!George taking care of Fictional!Matty during the bad times and I am so sorry for hyping it up so much I know you're just going to be let down I was just excited and am also a little sleep deprived đ
Thank you for sending in this ask though and I hope you do enjoy it tomorrow!! Thank you so much for reading and for your support! đ„° I hope you have a fantastic night!
â€ïžAlly
#allylikethecat#ask ally#anon ask#fanfiction#keep it kind#matty fic#gatty#clean#angst#subpar angst fest#its me of course its angsty#not like my most angsty#but like no one is having a good time#its soft though#i think at least#idk#im tossing it to the abyss tomorrow#im so sorry for hyping it up too much i got excited and then i snowballed a little bit#i also am running on no sleep#i saw the boys last night with my childhood best friend#then woke up 3 hours later to go to the airport to fly back to where i live now#it was nice being home for the weekend though#and getting to see my parents#sometimes i think i should move back to the east coast#but idk how pop would handle the winters#i bought him when i moved out west#and he was also bred here#he has literally never seen snow#it hit sixty five degrees and he grew his entire winter coat
2 notes
·
View notes
Text
Thinking about Jack being terrified.
Thinking about him being terrified of someone in the Jakob's family dying, because he'd be in the will. Because that means he'd have to go back. That means he'd have to tell the truth.
Thinking about him being terrified of Sl33py finding out about Angel. Terrified of how he'd react. Would he stay? Would he demand answers? What would Jack respond with, how could he explain? He barely understands it himself.
Thinking about the look on Jack's face when Sl33py does find out. When Sl33py is cradling the body of a daughter he didn't know they had, learning she was real, knowing this entire time he could have been holding her. Finding out in that moment that his closest friend was his child, was Jack's child, was their child. And now there's nothing he can do.
Thinking about Jack trying to explain, surrounded by the dead body of their enemy and the chained up siren they've been hunting down, how close they are and how far Sl33py feels as he look at him, and he sees that look, that one that means he's going to lose this.
The same his second wife gave him before fleeing, before abandoning him. The same his mother had given him before he never saw her again. The same his grandmother had. The look like he's wrong. Like he's done something wrong. Like they hate him. Like he's going to lose something.
Something important.
. . .
Thinking of Jack being terrified.
#borderlands handsome jack#The Catalyst AU#borderlands Sl33py#thinking about my au#thinking about the angst of my au#thinking about how the closer and closer they get to their goal the closer they get to jack knowing he has to tell the truth#that he cant keep this forever#but wanting to hold onto it for as long as he can#terrified that if sl33py knows anything real about him that he'll leave and he's the best thing he's ever had#he's scared of losing to the vault hunters of course scared of all of this being for nothing but even more he's scared of being alone again#losing his friends his husband his daughter and himself#thinking about what goes through holo jacks head when he meets sl33py and knows he's supposed to know him - knows he's important#but doesn't remember why#being so normal about my au <3#the scene with angel is so heartbreaking for so many reasons and i fully think writing it is going to send me into a coma
0 notes
Text
Do I enjoy seasons 4 and 5? Well yes! (There's nothing like seeing your favorite character suffer agony with the weight of a thousand suns.) But by god do I miss the vibe that seasons 1-3 had.
#can I explain that vibe? well no!#seasons 1-3 my beloved <333#especially season 2 I think it's my favorite#it really does have everything:#fun plot#angst#parent issues#spy stuff#arguable queer allegories#Ward being a fun to hate villain#Raina my best friend Raina#and (of course!) Skye/Daisy suffering like no one has ever suffered before#og fandom post tag
1 note
·
View note
Text
Just Friends!?
-Art in the banner from nek0zuu_ on X-
Pairings- Former Nerd! Gojo and popular F! reader
Summary - Satoru Gojo was the biggest nerd EVER in high school with you, next door neighbors, study buddies, you were the best friends in the world. Never having the courage to ask you -the 'popular girl' out- you never knew he felt for you. He ended up leaving town, moving to the big city of LA- getting famous with a modeling career, and lost touch with everyone from his old life. While you're working the family pub to help out your parents, years later, he finally comes back to visit, just to have you making his drink. Everything about him is different, aside from those pretty blue eyes and the sweet grin. You feel he's so accomplished now, and you're just a small town girl, but little do you know, you've never left his mind.
Warnings - Will be explicit and smutty (it's me!?) Nerdjo turned famous and cocky, but he's still just a Nerdjo deep down hehe- his chap, mentions of sex/getting turned on, Gojo being an ass tbh, welcome back Jock Sukuna and say hi to bitchy model Samantha lol, some angst and mutual pining, lots of feelings
Based HEAVILY on the 2005 Rom com Just Friends - part of my amazinggg moot @indiewritesxoxo's Friday night flicks! đ
<<<Part One - Masterlist - Part Three>>>
Part Two
Your POV
It was odd, being back in your hometown after years of living on your own, but when your family needed help with their bar, and with student loans piling up -Â teaching did not pay very well - you couldnât help but come back home for a bit. The shifts at the hometown bar helped, and staying with your parents for just a few months was definitely a life saver.
Itâs not exactly where you saw yourself, teaching lay offs all over, now you have a preschool class here and you love it, but itâs definitely not enough to cover everything. You feel so⊠just upset, that youâre back here at your first job, grabbing beers for familiar faces, people who never left their hometown, and some that have, but came back like you did.
Despite it being Spring, it was freezing where you lived, some cold spurt that brought on snow in March, so many of the town were curling up by the roaring fire, bundled up laughing and drinking to stay warm. The bar had quite a cozy atmosphere, it reminded you of home, truly, you grew up here, from bussing tables and cleaning to serving drinks.
âHey love, you look amazing.â You see Suguru and Shoko then, Shoko has a cigarette between her fingers, a familiar smile that makes you beam, as you come out from behind the bar, hugging them both.
âI missed you two oh goodness!â You receive a kiss on each cheek from them, as you hug them together.
âWe heard you were back in town, how have you been?â Suguru asks softly, you sigh a bit, peering up at the tall man.
âI canât believe Iâm back here. Layoffs.â They frown then. âI heard you all run a whole dentist office!?â
âSugu is a hot dentist.â Shoko teases, and he smirks a bit.
âShoko runs the clinic attached to it. She outranks me.â
âAlways.â You laugh with the two of them, hands on their shoulders now.
âIâm so proud of you two, what? Doctors, I can't believe that.â
âHey now, teaching is important.â Shoko brushes your hair back softly, earning your flushed cheeks at her praise.
âThey definitely donât make enough.â Suguru says, earning your sigh.
âYouâre telling me. Let me get you all drinks!â You eagerly bounce back, mixing them up drinks, Shoko loves a lemon drop from what you remember, and Suguru always enjoyed a rum and coke.
âYou remember!â Shoko winks as you hand her the pretty drink, garnishing it with a little lemon swirl and grinning. The noise of the bar fills your ears, as you lean across the polished bar table, glinting under the soft lights overhead.
âOf course I remember. Gosh, itâs been four years since Iâve seen you all I think.â You all start catching up, but of course it starts to get busier, and you begin to take care of all the customers as Suguru and Shoko start tossing darts at the black and red circled board.
You smile at them, theyâd always been the perfect couple, making that longing fill you too much. You fully expected to be married with kids by now, sure it was quite a homey little dream, that white picket fence, maybe two kids and some cute golden retriever, but thatâs what you always dreamed of. Unfortunately, your bad taste and men did not end in high school.
âSpeak of the devilâŠâ You murmur nervously, when you see him, Ryomen Sukuna looking just as good if not better than high school, he still wears his damn lettermanâs jacket from college, where heâd become an all star player, you hear now heâs even going pro.
Whatâs he doing back home?
He grins over now, red eyes sharp as ever, and you fully anticipate him bothering you, saying something pervy, as he walks across the crowded bar, stopping to talk to almost everyone, he was quite a name here. The only person more famous from your little town - there is a population of fourteen thousand and perhaps four stop lights- was Satoru Gojo.
Youâd seen him on the damn cat walk, recently he was on the cover of Vogue, him and some other really famous model, this little smirk on his face that just doesnât fit the boy you knew. If you thought he was cut before, his body was damn near godly, so perfect it was intimidating, and heâd only gotten prettier, not that Satoru wasnât always so pretty.
He just didnât know it then.
You think of him sometimes, hurt initially back when summer break hit after high school, and he refused all your calls, he refused to see or talk to anyone when you all lived so fucking close. You tried everything you could, feeling awful because it was your party and you didnât know, could you have done more? Could you have shoved everyone out?
You were fully planning to if heâd just given you a moment. Your yearbook to this day is something you cherish, and reading his sweet words over and over, heâd taken over an entire page, with words of love youâve never felt before. But to say it was all âa jokeâ and leaving, never accepting a friend request, shit he didnât even talk to Suguru or Shoko, his other best friends.
Satoru never spoke of his hometown in interviews, and when you saw his mom recently, you learned heâs never come home. You know things were hard on him, brutal even, but you wish he knew just how much you loved him, cared for him, sure it was more of a beautiful friendship, but you also were attracted to him, though you were scared to ruin that friendship.
If he just gave you a damn moment.
A friendship you built your entire life demolished, and you miss him even now, you miss the quiet mornings you two would study at the library, you miss the cup of coffee heâd have for you every morning. You missed the little sleepovers, playing pokemon games together, battling it out on the Wii, the amount of things the two of you shared, gone in a moment.
Sukuna leans across the bar, shaking you out of your reverie, his familiar, arrogant smirk just a little softer as his ruby eyes drape down your body, youâre just in some jeans and a polo, nothing too sexy for the family bar here. But he seems to take pleasure in every slow inch, murmuring your name.
âLook at you, even hotter than high school, shit.â You heat up a bit under his gaze, tilting your head and running your hand across your neck.
âThank you, Sukuna. You look good too.â You earn his wide grin, as he swipes a hand through his pink hair, snowflakes melting just a bit as he leans his hip against the bar now.
âIâve wondered how you were doing, arenât you a teacher?â
âI am, but⊠layoffs.â Sukuna frowns a bit. âIâm teaching preschool here for now, but itâsâŠâ
âThey donât pay shit.â On this, everyone agrees,
âMmhmm, but itâs my passion. So here I am, working the student loans off.â You wink at him, and he softens then, resting his elbow on the bar, a hand in his chin.
âSo pretty you shouldnât be working.â
âOh⊠no. Not at all.â You clear your throat, something is so different about him, heâs not the asshole you remember, or so it seems. âBut just temporary, Iâm finishing up a couple classes to teach higher education.â
âYou always were smart, youâll do well.â
âOh⊠thank you, Sukuna.â
âUsed to call me Kuna you know.â You giggle now, easing a bit, even under his gaze, which keeps darting down your body. âGod you havenât changed a bit.â
âSay that to the freshman fifteen that never left.â Sukuna chuckles then, when you turn and bend over, grabbing a beer.
âWent to your nice ass-â
âSukuna!â You glare behind yourself, and heâs chuckling. âHere I was thinking you were all sweet.â
âI am sweet, thank you. Shit Iâd love to catch up sometime?â You hand him his beer, sighing then.
âI donât knowâŠâ
âLunch or something?â
Satoruâs POV
Satoruâs stepping into the bustling bar with the most annoying model ever, cock hungry too, whoâs clinging to his arm, looking at the little bar in disgust, while he eyes the familiar surroundings. He scoffs as he sees Sukunaâs letterman jacket, so pretentious really, and eyes everyone around, surely⊠your parents still run this place, he wonders, do you ever come visit?
âItâs so⊠quaint.â Comes Samanthaâs voice next to him, running her fingers along the dusty bar, grimacing, sheâs as tall as Satoru in her heels, perhaps one of the few women who he doesnât tower over. All models were pretty tall, but typically he still had a couple inches, but Samantha was the best in her field, and maybe longer legs than Satoru Gojo himself.
âYeah, I guess compared to LA.â He murmurs, the surroundings oddly comforting, despite how much he thought heâd hate it here. Something about shivering in the cold and then coming to this warm, bustling bar wasâŠ
Homey.
It gnaws at him, as people recognize him, and they begin to all come up, many who used to pick on him. He clings to that pretty model of his tighter, putting on a bright grin and lowering his black Gucci shades, the two of them are decked out in Saint Laurent and looking like a million bucks. Even in public, you had to make sure you were dressed to kill.
âHoly shitâŠâ Satoru sees Suguru and Shoko then, their mouths drop as they come up to him. He's spoken to them a little here and there, but overwhelmingly has not said much since college was over. âLook at you two!â
âLook at you, all preening like a peacock.â Shoko rolls her dark eyes, sipping on a drink as she assesses him and his âgirlâ who is clinging to him, laughing far too fake to ever be taken for as genuine, grating on his nerves.
âHow cute, townies!â Samantha says, tossing blonde hair back, and Satoru scowls over at her.
âWhoâs the snob?â Suguru asks boldly, making her gasp as Satoruâs muffling his laughter.
âBe nice.â Satoru warns, hands in the pockets of his red dress pants, a ruby so bright and bold itâs ridiculous for a place where people wear jeans and flannels.
âTheyâre not nice, Gojo. I donât like it here!â Sheâs stomping her feet, and Satoru sighs, shaking his head.
âGo get a drink, hmm?â He turns her and smacks her ass, she cringes then.
âMyself!?â
âBecome immersed in the small town, itâll be good publicity, sweets.â He winks as she pouts and saunters off, ignoring the men and at one point hissing at one.
âSheâs on drugs orâŠâ Suguru trails off, and Satoru snorts.
âSheâs definitely on a good Adderall / Xani combo. Shit⊠I missed you guys.â He ruffles Shokoâs hair, and shoves at Suguru good naturedly, Suguru smiles a bit, dark hair even longer than Satoru remembers.
âSure you did. Come back to visit?â
âUh⊠no.â He peers at his phone, sighing now. âOur suite for whatever reason isnât available, I was stopping here and going to call Mom, since I have no reception whatsoever.â
âWhy would you bring her to your momâs, doesnât she suffer enough with you as her kid?â Shoko earns Satoru sticking his tongue out, picking up the phone and dialing.
âToru, sweetie!â Satoru sighs, he loves his mom, but to this day she really treats him like a child, even now.
âHey mom, cool if I stay a few nights? I have a modeling-â
âYouâre coming home!?â Satoru winces, pulling back the phone as Suguru and Shoko laugh.
âYeah, if itâs-â
âIâll make your favorite, baby, triple stack pancakes with sundae-â
âNo, no, too many carbs.â He hears his momâs sigh of disappointment, and clenches his jaw just a bit, looking over to see Samantha taking pictures of herself on her fancy phone, throwing up a pose now. âI guess yeah, Iâll eat pancakes.â
âMy baby, oh I canât wait, let me get started now!â His mom hangs up, and he canât help but feel that fondness, the emptiness heâs had for so long just the tiniest bit filled by her voice.
âSheâs excited.â He muses, sighing then. âI need a drink.â
Suguru and Shoko eye each other, and Satoruâs blue eyes narrow, studying their odd expressions. âYes, you should, bartender sheâs amazing.â Shokoâs smiling, and Satoruâs lips purse a bit.
âHmm, guess Iâll see. Iâll be back.â He pats their shoulders again, heading over and passing more and more familiar faces, gosh none of them left, huh?
He leans against the bar, poking around on his phone as he hears Sukuna, asking then -Â
âLunch sometime?â
He snorts, eyeing the tall, big man who used to torment him, now eye to eye with him, and damn near his size. Sukuna blinks in surprise a bit when Satoru eyes him with humor.
âLunch is friendzone territory, ouch.â Sukuna glares now, fists clenching on the bar, and thatâs whenâŠ
You see him.
Satoru Gojo.
âMaybe I like lunch.â Your voice shocks him then, he eyes you, wide blue eyes going to the face of the girl he loved.
Your face.
Youâre so pretty it makes his heart thud out of his fucking chest, youâre just like you were, maybe a bit more mature looking now, but god it was like a blast from his past, the ultimate memory of you couldnât compare. Youâre so beautiful, this fucking glow around you still, that comfort he has been craving hitting him in one instant, as he just stands there.
Satoru Gojo, who got whatever girl he wanted, was just standing there, staring at you, with his lips parted, you are heating up under his scrutiny, unsure of just what he was thinking, biting that lower lip a bit and shifting. He notices now, that youâre not fawning over him, drooling, like women did, if anything youâre glaring just a bit, your jaw set.
âI⊠you⊠hereâŠâ He canât compute a fucking word - stupid, stupid - why did you reduce him to pathetic again, after all these years!?
âYes, I work here again. I know, itâs not what I imagined either.â Your soft, devastated words attack him, making him feel like you punched him right in the gut, as Sukuna raises a brow at Satoru.
âFriend zone, did you just say that?â Satoruâs sputtering now, before clearing his throat, shutting his eyes and taking a breath.
Heâs not some ânerdâ anymore.
Heâs Satoru Fucking Gojo.
He smirks and leans against the bar, eyeing you slowly, pulling off pretentious shades that make you miss his tortoiseshell glasses. But when those piercing, swirling blue eyes hit you, trailing like Sukunaâs had, you feel so shy suddenly, so nervous around him, after so long. Surely he was looking down at you, surely he was so high and mighty that your life seemed sad to him.
You stand a little straighter now, while the two men, who have changed so much, both eye you, a blast from fucking high school if you ever saw one. âLook at youâŠâ He murmurs your name softly, like a caress- shit his voice is deeper, itâs so sure, so cocky and conceited, not the sweet boy you miss. âYou look great.â
âThanks, so do you.â You manage softly, heâs in some suit worth as much as your year of work youâre sure, open with a vest showing of chest muscles, fuck he has red silk gloves, itâs so ridiculous you almost laugh.
Heâs gorgeous butâŠ
Who is he really?
âWorking here again, huh?â He means it to be casual, but the way it comes off makes you straighten your shoulders, as Sukuna winces.
âAll that money, all those women and you never learned.â Satoru scowls at Sukuna now, while you turn away, giving him a view of a body heâs dreamed of, fuck youâre even sexier now, those jeans sitting just right, is none of you not perfect, not beautiful?
âWhat can I get you, Gojo?â You ask after grabbing another beer for Sukuna, who takes it with a smile, and he tenses at that.
Gojo.
When did you ever call him anything but âToruâ?
But, you all are literally strangers now.
âMartini.â He says, earning Sukunaâs snort, Satoruâs scowl heads his direction once again as you start to get the ingredients together, shaking it up in the gold shaker like a pro.
âLittle bitch drink.â
âBeer is disgusting, fuck that.â
Sukuna glares as he sips the drink, and you pour Satoru his martini, garnishing it and giving a small smile that doesnât reach your eyes. âOne martini.â
âThanks, sweetheart.â You falter, at his soft voice, at the way he says everything as if it were some caress.
âYouâre welcome.â He hands you far too much money then, making you blink. âItâs only ten bucks.â
âKeep the rest, love.â He winks now, and you feel your face heating up, did he think you needed it so badly? Does he pity you?
Does he care?
âThanks⊠um, sure on lunch, Sukuna.â Satoruâs teeth clench, like watching history repeat itself. âEven if itâs âfriend zoneâ Iâm fine with meeting up.â
âPerfect, hereâs my numberâŠâ He writes it right on one of the pretty white napkins, and you take it carefully. âIâll be in town all week.â
âAlright, sounds good.â Sukuna tips you, not the exorbitant fifty dollars Satoru just handed you, but a twenty, with a little nod of his head, as he passes Satoru now, and Samantha comes right up to him.
âOh look at you, all star for the-â Sheâs flirting but Sukuna ignores her, winking at you and making you want to giggle, but you barely hold it in. âSo rude! Gojo, can we please leave this shitty little bar?â
You scowl right up at the tall, beautiful model who pouts over at Satoru, clinging to his arm, he stiffens, but you see it, clearly theyâre⊠together. âThe âshitty little barâ is owned by my family. And you are more than welcome to leave.â
âOooh, youâre feisty.â Sheâs giggling psychotically, using her hand to make a clawing motion. âRawr!â
âThe fuckâŠâ You shake your head, sighing as you set back to work, Samanthaâs hands running down Satoruâs chest, irritating him to no end.
All he can see is you, and youâre just turning away, the girl heâŠ
He left.
He left you.
No word, no goodbye, and he thought maybe it wouldnât feel like this, maybe after eight years and endless women in his bed, he could stop feeling like this, stop the love he had. He tried to chalk it up to puppy love, you were the nicest person to him, of course he developed feelings, right?
Wrong.
He watches as you head out from behind the bar as Samanthaâs going on and on about some Instagram post, downing the rest of his martini. âWeâll leave in a minute, go wait in the car.â
âI canât believe we donât even have a driver, ugh!â Satoru blinks at her, turning her now, watching as you stop and talk to Suguru and Shoko, smiling so sweet, lighting up the whole fucking room.
âIâll be out in a minute.â
âOh fine butâŠâ She drags him down by his tie, whispering in his ear then- âI can suck you while you drive.â
What would once excite him doesnât compute, he just nods and pushes the crazy woman to the entrance of the bar. âSure whatever.â
âNo pictures, please.â She throws on her sunglasses, as curious people wonder just what this woman is talking about, and Satoru feels your eyes on him then, his catch yours across the room. He watches you tense, as he steps closer, and Shoko and Suguru depart, giving you both one moment.
âHi.â He manages to say, and for once, the pretentious rich model reminds you of him, the boy you grew up with, the one you miss so badly it feels like heâs a dream.
âHi.â Your soft voice ends him, youâre shifting side to side, Satoru towers over you, making you feel so small then, as he presses a hand against the wall over your head, tilting your chin up with his other hand. Your eyes go wide then, breath catching, heart hammering.
âIâd love to catch up, I am here for a few days, Iâll be at momâs.â You blink a bit then, looking down, gently taking his hand off your chin by his wrist, the contact making you both pause. For a moment he pictures it, kissing you, making every move he failed at in high school, taking your lips over.
He pictures so much, up to and including you under him, shit maybe now heâd have a chance with a girl like you, maybe he could taste your sweetness, could inhale that vanilla body spray you somehow wear eight years later. Could show you pleasure he bets you never got before, cock aching just being in your presence, he has to will it to go down.
âYour mom, I just saw her.â You ease his hand down, back resting against the wall just a bit, hair falling across your shoulders, you gasp when he brushes it back, another move he had tried and failed at back then.
That night should have been his first kiss.
You should have been his first everything, fuck.
âCould we do dinner or drinks?â His tone reminds you of what he said earlier, so you smile, a little mean glint in your eye.
âMaybe lunch.â
âLunch!?â Heâs glaring, thin white brows lowered, and you giggle.
âCoffee?â
Shit.
âOr is that too âfriend zoneâ for you, Gojo.â Satoru blinks a bit, hand falling, barely brushing your shoulder when it falls, you try to ignore how good it feels, he tries to act nonchalant, not like the fucking world is faded, aside from you. That the entire bar is just an echo, itâs just you.
And youâre furious, he can feel it. âNo, no I mean itâs fine. If you want⊠coffee we can do coffee.â He canât believe heâs saying this, he brushes his white locks back, winking down then. âWe can do whatever you want.â
âUh huh. Well, coffee then, if you want to catch up Iâm surprised, considering it all though.â Satoruâs jaw clenches just a bit.
âIâd like to catch up.â You soften at his first vulnerable statement, the first thing that feels real. âHow about in the morning, are you staying nearby?â
âIâm living with my parents for a couple months.â He frowns at that, you suddenly feel so insecure, a rich model right in front of you, just as he said that day- that heâd make it, and you allâŠ
Would just burn out.
Maybe you did.
âOh, you are, is something wrong?â
âHelping them a bit, big teacher layoffs nationwide.â
âYou teach?â His smile is finally genuine, as you nod, so shyly, his shoulders relax, as his hands slip in his pockets once more. âYou always wanted to.â Your eyes shoot up to his now, swirling beautiful blue, a hint of the sweet boy you adored.
âYou remember?â
âHow couldnât IâŠâ
âI figured you forgot us all.â Satoru gulps down the guilt, as you manage to pull yourself together, sighing. âCome by my parents in the morning, if you remember where they are.â
âHow can I forget, itâs across the street.â
âAll right then⊠I look forward to it.â He awkwardly leans down, as you wrap a friendly arm around his waist, inhaling his cologne, much different than the boy who wore axe body spray and always sucked on lifesavers. His hard body against your much softer one feels a little too good, when he rests his chin on your head.
Nothing has ever felt better than holding you in his arms.
Memories swirl for the both of you, but itâs different, Satoru seems like some bold and pretentious stranger, but for a moment you remember. You remember crying in his arms, over this breakup or that, you remember his sweet hugs during study sessions, you remember laughing and watching the dumbest movies. You exhale just a bit, as a big hand presses the small of your back.
Satoru missed you.
He doesnât say it, he canât say anything, pulling back and looking at you then, hand coming to cup your face, opening his mouth to speak when Samantha starts shouting âIâm bored Gojo! Iâm so bored!â
The entire bar turns her direction, you fall back a bit, as Gojo internally curses, seeing the brat that is his partner crossing her arms in that fur coat. âIâm coming okay, shit!â
âYour girlfriend is bored.â Youâre giggling then, you canât help it, covering your face as Samantha glares.
âNot my girlfriend, jesus. Um⊠okay, the morning.â You nod, walking off now, past Samantha, who hisses at you like the psychotic bitch she is, making Satoru grimace with Suguru and Shoko walk up to Satoru.
âYou fucked that intro up.â Suguru says, snorting as he puts his arm around Shokoâs waist, and sheâs laughing.
âFucked it up bad.â
âOh like youâre any help.â They just shake their head, eyeing Satoruâs screaming model bestie.
âSee you in eight more years.â Suguruâs words sting, as Satoru feels it then, the guilt eating away at him, but Samantha wonât shut up long enough for him to process, he drags her out into the cold, chilled air, seeing you climbing up into what appears to be your SUV, your eyes flicker to him for just a moment, before you shut the door.
âYou like townies hmm? Canât stop eye fucking girl next door.â Satoruâs eyes make even Samantha falter then.
âWho I like is none of your fucking concern. In.â He plops down in the rental, an audi of course, god forbid Satoru Gojo or Samantha would be seen in anything less, on that they are the same.
âYouâre so cranky, sheâs hot, just⊠gives those girl next door vibes.â
âYeah well, she was the girl next door for me. Almost.â He feels her hand now, trailing over his thigh, she leans over and laughs in his ear, making him cringe. âHowâd I get stuck with-â
âLet me make you feel so good, should I suck little Gojo?â
âLittle Gojo!? Itâs not little, Samantha.â He shoves her off, and she pouts again, crossing her arms.
âHowâd I get stuck with you is the question, no fun. Now we have to go stay in poorville.â
âItâs the fucking suberbs.â
âPoor. Poor. Poor. Boring, boring.â Satoru almost pushes her out of the goddamn car, no blow job would be worth it, even if it would shut her up for a moment, even if his cock twitches thinking of you.
He pulls up to his home, his mother already has it opened when he walks up, hugging him tightly, kissing his face all over and making him wince. âMomâŠâ
âMy baby, I never thought youâd come home.â Sheâs got tears in her pretty blue eyes, she visits LA once a year or more, but now the way tears fall from eyes that match his wracks him with guilt.
He could have come back at least once, right?
No, no he couldnât.
âAnd this isâŠâ
âSamantha.â She shakes his momâs hand, tossing back long blonde locks and smiling. âYou have such a quaint little home.â
Satoruâs mom blinks rapidly, brows together, this wasnât a small home, it was four stories and lovely, left to them from Satoruâs dad, but he supposes to a rich, spoiled brat like Samantha, itâs âquaintâ. âUm, thank you, and youâre staying too?â
âUnfortunately.â Satoruâs mom raises her brows, as Samantha clings to Satoru once again, grinning.
âI get to meet the mom, huh? Iâm so special-â
âLetâs eat.â
Satoru finally leaves a snoring, annoying model brat Samantha alone in the guest room, when he walks inside his childhood room, frozen. Time has been frozen, his mother hasnât changed a single fucking thing, up to and including pictures of you and him all over the walls. He gulps down his emotions, shutting the door behind him with a quiet click, undressing carefully.
He sees his old nerdy ass sweater, one youâd gotten him, still folded on his desk, like he never left. His fingers brush the fabric, as he stares at his reflection, feeling like heâs a ghost in his own room. The connections start to build, the mirror he kissed that night, the endless photos and mementos he kept. He eyes that box now, opening a letter carefully, crumbled and faded ink.
My Toru, I hope you have the best day, I canât wait for the movies!
Toru, can you believe how the year has flown by!?
Do you want to go bowling Y or N
Your new glasses are so cute I love them!
Bad day today, sorry Iâm quiet.
Tears fall down his cheeks, he only notices when the blotches form on the ink, all the times youâd write to him every day, passing little notes in class with hearts all over them, brightening his day. Heâd kept every single fucking one, and there were so, so many in this tin box, stuffed inside like all of his fucking feelings.
He wipes his eyes quickly, shaking it off, pulling out his luggage with his own clothes and getting dressed in sweats for the night, curiously pushing on the cd left in the player, sighing then. Your favorite song, itâs that mixed CD he was making you, the one he never gave you. Satoru quickly turns it off, the button a resounding click, walking to the corkboard littered with you.
Knock knock knock.
âCome in, mom.â She does just that, peeking her pretty face, still so young looking, so sweet as she smiles at him. âYou didnât change any of it.â
âNo, I always hoped youâd come back, at least for a day.â She walks up to Satoru now, seeing the photos heâs staring at now, Satoru and you sipping a milkshake together with two straws, in the middle of a diner. âYou two were so sweet, sheâs back in town you know.â
âI know⊠Iâm seeing her in the morning.â His momâs eyes light up, and he laughs a bit. âDonât get excited, my life isnât here mom.â
âPart of it will always be.â She cups his face, smiling up at him. âI hope you have fun with her, she has kept in touch all these years you know.â
âShe has?â
âYes, she⊠misses you. She asks about you when she visits town.â Satoru blinks back emotion, turning away now, clearing his throat.
You asked about him after all this? After he'd gone out of your life for good? What if he just heard you out, what if heâŠ
âIâm tired, mom.â Mrs. Gojo nods, a hand on his back for a moment.
âGood night, Toru.â
âNight.â He lays in his bed, phone blowing up, his agent with details, a coordinator for the show, friends from LA teasing him on having to come back home, but he quickly turns it off, holding a photo of you, the only one he brought.
He gently touches it, sighing, wonderingâŠ
Will you like him now, could he be good enough?
While you lay in bed, tossing, turning, fuming damn near at Satoru Gojoâs audacity, sitting up finally, putting on Satoruâs favorite song, on that mixed CD you had been making him, before he disappeared. Your childhood room is the same as it always was, littered with photos of you and Satoru, your best friend that just disappeared, and came back a different person.
You touch a photo, one where heâs grinning so big with his cute little braces, holding up a science award, and youâre so overcome with emotion you have to hold back your tears, touching the polaroid gently. Was that boy in there somewhere, the boy you knew, the one who deserved the world - he seemingly got it of course.
Would he find you so boring? He hung out with celebrities, he walked runways, heâs clearly got a beautiful - batshit insane but- girl on his arm. Was it some pity, did he feel bad you were in a little bar? Your mind canât handle it all, as you plop down in your childhood bed, mind racing.
Who was Satoru Gojo now?
Ah why'd I tear up when Satoru goes home? Next part we see just how coffee goes lol
taglist #1- @pinkyvomit @saitamaswifey @kachowness @vraiao @artbligh @psychoartiste @ghostskilledmyaddiction21 @bsenpai @simp-for-wanderer @rjreins @emonaculate @myahfig4 @casua11ycrying @psycren @blushedcheri @ureuphoriasworld @frozenmallows @kanaojacksonofc @rcveriees @xlilycoco @yukimaniac @sypnasis @tokina @sharkubi @tztuoo @hyori2 @yesdere @gradmacoco @gamerhere @seikamuzu @xinsonyax @vvaoo @angie420 @ria54sworld @blue-musingss @mysticmyth @asimpinamillion @arabellasolstice @ilovebeansyay @notme000 @emochosoluvr @iv-vee @heh123321 @fushikamo @danilovesboba @spookyy-gracee @satorusleftnut @clqxuds @femaholicc
#satoru gojo x you#gojo x reader smut#nerd gojo#nerdjo#satoru gojo#satoru x reader#satoru x you#gojo smut#gojo x reader#jjk smut#jjk x reader#satoru gojo fluff#satoru smut#divider by cafekitsune
3K notes
·
View notes
Text

no doubt ââ s. jy
âł summary ââ struggling to balance a world tour, endless responsibilities, and...well, the sting of getting dumped by his girlfriend, jake finds peace & comfort confiding in youâone of his closest friends. what begins as lighthearted late-night phone calls while he's away on tour deepens into something more, quickly pulling you both into uncharted emotional territory. as your connection with jake intensifies, so does your inner turmoilâtorn between the comfort of your easy relationship with him and the terrifying possibility of falling for someone you're not even sure you can have in the first place. but jake? jake has absolutely no doubt of what he wantsâand spoiler alert? it's you.
âł pairing ââ jake x f!reader, [ft. childhoodbestfriend!jungwon, bestfriends!enha]
âł genre ââ idol!jake, friends to lovers!au || angstttt, fluff, crack
âł âá°. 23.7k [never beating the allegations of getting too attached to my works and having too much fun writing i fear...]
âł contains ââ angst! very angsty but only after a lot of fluff...the cheesy cringe type but then it goes downhill real quick...but happy ending i swear!, mentions of insecurities, maybe one or two curse words, fic starts with jake dating og character named jenn, the use of pet names, jungwon practically plays therapist, jake is absolutely whipped for reader but is terrible at communication and a certified idiot . also jungwon is reader's best friend so the beginning sets up the context for that lolz
âł addie's â .á ââ she's DONEEE [do u hear me crying in the background]...so some backstory lore abt this ficâbasically two years ago i had a dream about the ~angsty scene~ of this fic and ever since then, i've had this itch of putting it into words. and when i finally decided to do it, no doubt came out and i thought it was literal fate since the lyrics match the vibe so well...don't tell me it isn't fate guys :') anyways..this is a little different than my typical writing style even though of course i had to include summm crack..but i am still nervous abt how it came out so i really really hope you guys like it :') thank u for all the support and love always <3
âł update .á ââ check out the sequel series of this fic here!
.ă»ă.ă»ăâă».ă»â«ă»ăă»ă..ă»ă.ă»ăâă».ă»
You and Yang Jungwon were literally born to be best friends. Â
Like, there was no other option. Â
Your mom? Their high school's poster child for academic perfectionâtop of her class, president of every club imaginable, a certified teacher's pet. Â
Jungwon's mom? Their high school's unofficial social chairâlife of the party, karaoke queen, probably responsible for half the faculty's headaches.Â
Nothing alike.Â
So naturally, of course, they were inseparable. By their junior year, they'd already started planning their futures together, including one very specific and totally realistic goal that all teenage girl best friends make when they're young:Â Â
"We should have our first kids around the same time and force them to be best friends!" Â
"Oh my gosh, yes," Jungwon's mom agreed enthusiastically. "Like, we'll make them share everything! Matching outfits, playdates, joint birthday parties!" Â
But what your moms didn't realize as they were giggling over the playful promise that probably didn't hold any meaning to them at the age of 17?Â
The universe was taking notes. Â
So fast forward a couple decades later, and there you were, baby best friends from birth, fulfilling the shared dream of your mothersâthe true puppeteers in this scenario. Â
All your moms had to do was execute their promise as planned, but the rest of it? The rest of it was easy. Â
You and Jungwon clicked before you even knew what words were, communicating in a series of shared giggles and unintelligible baby noises. By the time you turned two, you were finishing each other's sentences in your made-up gibberish language, and by preschool, the bond was unshakable.Â
You twoâjust like your momsâwere inseparable. Â
By high school, everyone knew you were a package dealâwhere you went, Jungwon followed, and vice versa. So, when he announced your sophomore year that he was leaving to compete on a televised idol survival show, you were, understandably, skeptical. Â
"Are you sure it's not a scam?" You had asked, rolling lazily around on his bed while he scrambled around his room, packing his bags. Â
"It's not a scam," Jungwon laughed, carefully folding his clothes.Â
"Did they ask for your social security number?" Â
"Y/N." Â
"Exactly. I'm just sayingâif you end up on one of those exposĂ© documentaries about fake talent shows, don't say I didn't warn you." Â
Despite your teasing, you knew how much this meant to him. Jungwon had been dreaming about being in the music spotlight since he figured out how to work a karaoke machine at the age of six. Â
So when he eventually did make his debut with his group, you weren't surprised at allâit was inevitable, written in the stars, just like how your friendship with him was.
What did surprise you, though, was how seamlessly you got roped into his new world. Â
Sure, Jungwon's life got infinitely busier overnight, but there is no universe that exists in which he'd forget about youâhis non-conjoined twin, ride-or-die, and ultimate life-long nuisance (his words, not yours). Â
And so naturally, you became an honorary member of this new life of his. The boys' practice studio might as well be your new homeâthe endless days camping out on the floor of their dance studio with your head in your textbooks while they drilled their choreography for the hundredth time proved that. Or maybe how you crash on their dorm couch so often that Sunoo coined you your new nickname: their unofficial eighth member. Â
Which brings you to now: a marketing major by day, unofficial idol by night, and, as always, a certified magnet to chaos.
Case in point? Whatever madness was happening around you at this exact moment. Â
"Okay, but hear me out," Heeseung says, gesturing dramatically with his pizza sliceâone of many scattered across the coffee table everyone was sitting around. "Pineapple is the perfect combination of sweet and savoryâ"Â Â
"It's a crime against humanity," Sunghoon cuts in.Â
Tomorrow? The boys leave for their five-month tour. Â
Tonight? Tonight is tradition: the pre-tour pizza bash. Â
Naturally, it's chaos, as no one has bothered with the last-minute packing they're supposed to be doing. Â
Not a single bag is packed. Â
"It's fruit on bread," you scrunch your nose, taking a bite of your own normal pepperoni pizza. "This isn't dessert, Hee."Â Â
"Thank you!" Sunghoon reaches across the table to high-five you.Â
From the couch behind you, Jake chuckles and nudges your back with his knee, "Big talk coming from someone who claims pickles belong on everything."Â Â
"Uh, because they do," you whip your head around to glare at him. "Pickles are versatile."Â Â
"Versatile my ass," Jungwon mumbles from his spot beside you. "I love you, but you're deranged."Â Â
"Look who's talking, Mr. 'I-put-hot-sauce-on-everything'," you shoot back, eyes narrowing at your best friend. Everyone chuckles from around the table at your dramatic, yet endearing, overreaction.Â
"Hot sauce is different," Jay chimes in without even looking up from his phone. "It's an enhancer."Â Â
"Pickles enhance flavor too!"Â Â
"By making everything taste like vinegar," Sunoo deadpans from your other side. "Gross."Â Â
"Whatever," you roll your eyes. "You're all uncultured."Â Â
"And you're a menace," Jake quips from behind you, his voice dripping with amusement. You don't even have to turn around to see the smirk on his faceâyou can hear it loud and clear.Â
"Careful, Sim," you say with a sly glance over your shoulder. "Keep talking, and I'll start adding pickle juice to your coffee."Â Â
The room fills with laughter, but before Jake can fire back, his phone buzzes aggressively against the couch. You watch him glance down at his screen before his playful smile instantly fades. Â
"I'll be right back," Jake mutters, getting up and heading towards the kitchen without another word. Â
You frown as you watch him disappear around the corner, the sudden shift in his mood gnawing at you, and you can't help but wonder what's gotten under his skin.Â
After a few more minutes of heated debates over pizza toppingsâand yet another round of everyone ganging up on your weird pickle obsessionâyou decide it was time for a drink refill. Â
Excusing yourself, you step into the kitchen, only to find Jake leaning against the counter, his arms crossed and gaze fixed on the empty wall in front of him. His phone sits abandoned on the counter, screen dark. Â
"Jake?" You call out softly, approaching slowly.Â
Your voice breaks through his haze, his expression flickering as he registers you standing in the doorway, your brows furrowed in concern. Â
"What's going on?" You ask, moving closer to stand in front of him.  Â
"Nothing," Jake says too quickly, forcing a smile that didn't quite reach his eyes.
You give him a look and he knows that you know he's lying, "Jake.."Â Â
He exhales, his expression crumbling as he runs a hand through his hair, "Just...Jenn called."Â Â
Ah. Of course. Jenn. Â
You almost flinch at the sound of the name, the weight it carries instantly souring your stomach. Jake's on-again, off-again girlfriend of two years was a constant source of heartbreakânot just for the poor boy, but for the entire group who helped pick up the pieces of his broken heart after every messy break-upâŠand even messier make-up. Â
"She broke up with me," Jake admits quietly, his voice barely above a whisper. "For real this time. Something about me leaving for tour and how it wasn't going to work out."Â Â
Your heart hurts at the sight of him in front of youâshoulders slumped, hands nervously twisting the hem of his shirt, as if trying to distract himself from the conversation. Â
"Oh, Jake...," you murmur, placing a gentle hand on his shoulder as you lean against the counter next to him. Â
"I'm fine," he insists, waving it off, but the expression on his face clearly betrays him. Â
"No, you're not," you say, trying to catch his eyes. "And that's okay."Â Â
Jake lets out a shaky breath, finally looking up from the ground to look at you, before shrugging, "I don't even know why Iâm surprised. We've been...really off for a while now. Like, more than usual. But still, it sucks."Â Â
âOf course, it sucks," you nod, agreeing softly. "You guys were together for a long time. You cared about her."Â Â
For a moment, the two of you sit in a heavy silence with an unspoken understanding, the only sounds coming from the muffled chatter and laughter in the other room. You stay close, letting him process without pushing further. Â
Still, you can't entirely suppress the annoying flare of emotions bubbling in your chestâa tangled knot of sympathy andâŠsomething else. Relief, maybe? Not that you would ever wish any sort of pain on Jakeâbut you hate the way Jenn always leaves him like this: drained, doubting himself, and trying to piece together what went wrong, where he went wrong.Â
"Come back to the living room," you say finally, nudging his side gently. "Ni-ki is freaking out over which hoodies to pack. And I swear, they're all the same black hoodie."Â Â
Jake lets out a small, tired laugh, "You don't need me for that. He's gonna end up packing all of them, just watch."Â Â
"You don't know that," you tease. "Besides, I need someone's back up to help me convince him he's not actually going through an emo phase."Â Â
His eyes carry a faint smile as he looks at you, the corners of his lips lifting just enough to remind you of the warmth he usually carries. Â
"Okay," he says in a whisper, pushing himself off the counter. Â
You start towards the doorway, forgetting about your drink refill entirely, but his voice stops you. Â
"Y/N?"Â Â
You turn to find him still standing there, his eyes filled with warmth and appreciation. Â
"Thanks," he adds, a small smile on his face. It's such a simple statement, but the way he says itâsoft, sincere, and maybe just a little desperateâmakes something twist in your stomach. "For just...always being here."Â Â
You smile back up at the boy, "Of course, Jake. I'll always be here for you. You know that."Â Â
For a moment, he holds your gaze, as if taking a mental note of something. Then he nods, his shoulders relaxing.
"Okay," he says, exhaling as he gestures toward the doorway. "Let's go.â
You follow behind the boy back to the living room, silently hoping he knows just how much you mean your promise to him. Â
Jake's body is on autopilot at this point. Â
Another city, another show, another string of flashing lights and deafening cheers. It's a month into tour, and the endless loop of responsibilities has left him no room to just breathe. Â
And he loves this lifeâhe really does. But tonight, for reasons he can't explain, the adrenaline that usually keeps him afloat isn't enough. Pure exhaustion lingers in his bones, heavier than the applause and screams echoing in his memory, and he just canât seem to shake it.Â
When his head finally hits the stiff hotel pillow, Jake exhales with a heavy sigh. The city around him is alive, the neon lights brightly dancing against his windowpane, but he feels none of it.Â
Instead? He just feels the weight of homesickness and the ache of being alone.Â
Normally, he would push through, shove these thoughts into the back of his mind, call it a night. But tonight, the ache feels differentâsharper, louderâand before he knows it, his phone is in his hand before he can talk himself out of it, his thumb hovering over your name on his screen.Â
A familiar battle wages in his mind, one heâs been battling more recently ever since tour became a little heavier on him. Slowly, the quiet yearning has been creeping in, and heâs been missing home more and more, craving the feeling of familiarity. But it isnât just the physical places or the comfort of his regular routine that he craves.Â
Itâs something else, something harder to name.Â
And for some other reason he canât seem to explain, he thinks itâs you.Â
Jake doesnât know when it started. Maybe it was hearing the sound of your voice through the phone whenever the guys called you to check in every now and then. Or maybe it was the way you would text in their shared group chat, your messages always tinged with humor or a sense of calm that somehow made everything feel a little less overwhelming.Â
Whatever it was, it stuck with him. He finds himself craving that unexplainable comfort only you seem to bring. He tells himself itâs nothing special, just the natural pull of familiarity. Youâre back at home, the place he misses the most, so obviously, through association, it makes sense.Â
Itâs logical. Nothing more.Â
Thatâs what he tells himself as his thumb hovers over your name. Itâs not about you specificallyâit couldnât be. Itâs just the connection to home. The grounding warmth of your voice. The way you somehow make the distance feel a little less suffocating.Â
Obviously. Nothing more.Â
He presses call. Â
Two rings. That's all it takes before your voice cuts through all the static in his head. Groggy, soft, and achingly familiar. Like home. Â
"Jake? It's late, is everything okay?"Â Â
Jake glances at the clock. 10:13PM where he is. Much later for you, he imagines. Guilt stirs, but... Â
He doesn't want to hang up.Â
Hearing your voice feels like the first breath of air after surfacing from deep water. He instantly feels more comfortable despite the heaviness in his chest.
"Hey," he mumbles, his voice quiet. "I'm okay. Just...needed to hear a friendly voice, I guess."Â Â
"Wow, are the boys that bad that you need to call me?" You tease warmly, despite the sleepiness lingering in your words. Â
Jake chuckles, the sound low and tired, "Nothing against them, really. It's just...sometimes you need someone who reminds you of home, you know?"Â Â
The other end of the line goes quiet for a moment. He can hear you shuffle, and he braces himself for a teasing comment about him being sappy and sentimental. But instead, your voice softens. Â
"Well, I'm glad I could be that for you," your voice telling him you're smiling brightly on the other side of the screen. "Though if I had a private jet, I'd send it right now. Bring you back instantly."Â Â
"A private jet, huh?" Jake's eyes flutter close as he's engulfed into the usual, playful rhythm that's always there between the two of you. "You'd do that for me?"Â Â
"Only if you bring back goodies, preferably snacks," you quip back, and the warmth in his chest grows. Â
There's another pause, the kind that feels comfortable rather than awkward. Jake shifts in his spot and before he can stop himself, he blurts out, âHow do you do that?â Â
âDo what?âÂ
âMake everything feel...lighter. Like, I canât explain it, but just hearing you makes me feel like Iâm not carrying all this stuff by myself.âÂ
Your voice softens at his sudden vulnerability.Â
âBecause you don't have to carry it all on your own, Jake. You know that, right? Thatâs what friends are for."Â Â
Jake hums in response, a low sound of acknowledgement as he keeps his phone pressed close, your voice instantly soothing the heavy emotions he's been carrying.Â
"You sound exhausted," you say after a beat, your tone cautious but filled with genuine care. "How are you holding up? With everythingâthe tour, the...break-up, just...you?"Â Â
Jake lets out a low groan, his fingers brushing through his hair. "You sound like my mom."Â Â
"Well, someone has to," you tease lightly, a relieved laugh slipping into your voice, as if you'd been afraid you overstepped. "Seriously, Jake. Are you doing okay?"Â Â
Jake hesitates, the question catching him off guard. He hadn't let himself think too much about Jenn or the breakup since leaving for tour a month ago. The boys knew better than to bring it up, and Jake had been grateful for thatâfor the distraction. Â
But now, with you, it feels different.Â
Safer, easier. Natural. Â
âHonestly? I donât know,â he sighs, the sound heavy through the phone. âSome days it feels like Iâm fine, like Iâve moved on, and other days...itâs like Iâm stuck in this loop of âwhat ifs.â Like, what if I did something different? Or..."Â Â
He trails off to a pause, his throat tight, before he finally admits to you, and himself, "...what if I just wasn't enough?"Â Â
âJake,â you say gentle but firm, cutting through his spiraling thoughts. âYou are enough. You've always been enough. Jenn...she just wasnât the right person for you. That doesnât mean you did anything wrong.âÂ
He swallows hard, your words settling into the cracks he didn't even realize were there.Â
"Thanks, Y/N. I mean it. It's just...hard, you know? Haven't really talked about it since it happened. But talking to you helpsâa lot."Â Â
âIâm glad." He can hear the quiet sincerity in your words. âAnd for what itâs worth, I think youâre doing an amazing job. With tour, with...everything. You've got this, Jake. Iâm really proud of you.â
Jake lets out a breathy laugh, the warmth in your words settling something in his chestâa knot he didn't even realize was there.Â
âYou always know what to say, donât you?âÂ
âItâs a gift,â you easily reply, and he can hear the grin in your voice, the easy banter making him feel lighter. Â
"I missed this," the words tumble out before he can stop himself. Then he quickly adds, as if to explain himself, "It's weird not having you around. The boys are great and all, but you give the best advice. Don't tell them that."Â Â
You giggle on your end, the sound making Jake's lips curve into a small smile and his heart twists. Â
In both a comforting and terrifying way.Â
"I miss it too," your voice quieter now. "But I'm here. You know that, right? Even if you're on the other side of the world, or if you call me at four in the morning like you're doing right now."Â Â
Jake lets out a chuckle followed by a sleepy groan, "Sorry about that. But...thank you, Y/N. For picking up."Â Â
"Always," you reply, and he hopes you mean it. Â
A beat passes. Jake knows he should hang up, that he should let you sleep. He tries to convince himself that you need the sleep more than he needs this call. Â
But he can't help himself. Â
"You'll yell at me if I don't sleep, won't you?"Â Â
"Absolutely. Go to bed, Jake. Or at least try. Zombie mode doesn't suit you."Â Â
"Fine," he sighs dramatically, but his eyes feel heavier and he knows he's falling asleep, the tension in his body from before easing away. "But only because you scare me sometimes."Â Â
You laugh. "Good. Now get some rest. And call me whenever you need to, okay?"Â Â
"Okay," he mumbles into his phone quietly, his mind already slipping into a deep sleep.Â
"Goodnight, Y/N."Â Â
"Goodnight, Jake."Â Â
"Don't you have a bedtime, Sim Jaeyun?" You tease, answering the call. The clock reads 1:27AM, and you should be asleepâyou really shouldâbut you smile anyways when Jake's name appears on your screen. Â
"Bedtime? I don't know her," his voice slightly groggy, but as usual, still warm. "Besides I knew you'd be awake. You don't sleep like a normal person either."Â Â
You roll your eyes, knowing fully well he can't see it, "Yeah, well, I don't have to dance around a stage for two hours tomorrow."Â Â
"True, but you do have to deal with my constant calls and keep me entertained. That's way harder."Â Â
"Oh yeah, obviously," you say with mock seriousness. "Being your emotional support human is a full-time job."Â
âEmotional support human,â Jake repeats, chuckling softly. âYouâre right. I guess I really owe you, huh?â
âOh, 100%,â you shoot back, a grin in your voice. âI want one of those tour hoodies you guys keep posting with.âÂ
âDone. What size?âÂ
"The oversized one."Â Â
Jake pauses. âLet me guessâso you can sleep in it?"Â Â
You hesitate, suddenly sheepish at how he knows you too well, âHey, it's only cozy if it's oversized!"Â Â
You hear his soft laugh on the other end of the line.Â
âCute. Iâll make sure to steal one for you.âÂ
You try not to overanalyze the way your stomach flips at the word cute, and the easy way he says it, like itâs the most natural thing in the world. Â
You shake the thought off immediately. This wasn't new, after all, Jake's always warm and easy to talk to. But latelyâover the past month of phone callsâthe way he says certain things, the tone he says them in, and the way they make you feel? It carried a weight you weren't sure how to hold. Â
In both a comforting and terrifying way. Â
âSo, how was your day?â you suddenly bring up, trying to redirect your thoughts.Â
"Tiring," Jake sighs, his voice muffled as he shifts around in bed. "And Jungwon keeps beating me at Mario Kart during our break time. My pride is in shambles, Y/N."Â Â
"Let me guess," you smirk, repeating his words from earlier. "He picks Yoshi, and you keep picking Toad because you think he's underrated."Â Â
"Excuse me," Jake scoffs. "Toad is underrated. But, for your information, I choose Toad because your go-to character is Toadette."Â Â
Your heart does that stupid flip again. His words are lightâI mean, you guys are talking about Mario Kart for god's sakeâbut it's stuff like that that keeps you questioning the true meaning behind his words.
You ignore the feeling, instead, a laugh bubbles up in response, an attempt to sound unaffected.
"You're so weird."Â Â
âBut you like it,â he quips, voice dipping just slightly, like heâs testing the waters.Â
You're caught off guard by the sudden shift in his tone, but you recover just as quickly.Â
"Debatable."Â Â
âLiar.â
His tone is teasing, but there's something softer behind it, âYou wouldnât still be on the phone with me if you didnât like me at least a little.âÂ
âMaybe Iâm just bored,â you shoot back, though your cheeks are burning at his sudden forwardness, questioning if heâs serious or just messing with you.Â
You hear him hum in response, "Then I guess I'll have to work harder to keep you interested."Â Â
âOh yeah? How are you planning to do that?ïżœïżœ You try to match his teasing tone, but internally, you feel unsteady under the implication of his words.Â
âBy being my usual charming self, duh,â he says, his voice dropping into a smooth tone. âAnd, you know, calling you every night so you donât forget about me.âÂ
Your heart squeezes. "You already do that, stupid. You think I'd forget about you?"Â Â
âNever,â Jake's reply is immediate, almost instinctive, leaving no room for doubt. âBut just in caseâŠI like hearing your voice. Makes me feel like Iâm not a million miles away.âÂ
His words linger in the space between you, heavier than the playful banter from earlier. You swallow hard, trying your best to keep your voice steady.Â
âYouâre not a million miles away, Jake.âÂ
âFeels like it,â he murmurs. You hear a pause in his voice, as if he's thinking hard about his next words. âI miss home. I miss...you."Â
Your chest tightens, and your hands grip the sheets beneath you, as if the fabric could somehow ground you. Your heart is doing that thing againâthe erratic, terrifying thing that makes you want to believe in something you're not sure is even real. Â
And at the same time, your thoughts are scrambling to say something lighthearted before the conversation steers into that dangerous, dangerous territory you were sure you weren't ready for. Â
Not yet. Â
"Well, you better win at least one round of Mario Kart for me while you're out there," you force a laugh, trying to mask the tremor in your voice. Â
Jake laughs, the sound genuine, "I'll try. But if I lose, just know I'm dedicating every race to you."Â Â
"Wow, I'm so honored," you try to deadpan, but he can sense the grin in your voice. Â
"You should be," his voice softens again. "Thanks for picking up tonight, by the way. I know it's late."Â Â
He never fails to thank you every night, as if you haven't been picking up every day for the past month and won't be picking up tomorrow, and the next day...and the day after that. Â
And, somehow, the same, genuine appreciation makes it so hard for you to ignore that weird, warm, fluttering sensation growing inside you every time you talk to him. Â
But, regardless, you always give him the same reply:Â
"Always," your voice matching his softness. "Call me whenever, okay?"Â Â
"Donât say that," Jake warns, the teasing edge creeping back into his tone. "I'll actually do it."Â Â
"Fine," you giggle. "But if you call me at four in the morning again, I'm putting my phone on Do Not Disturb."Â
"Deal." He pauses, then adds, "Goodnight, Y/N."Â Â
"Goodnight, Jake."Â Â
As you hang up, you stare at your phone for a moment longer than you should have, your room feeling oddly quiet and too empty without his voice. Â
It's just another call, Y/N. Just another call between two friends. Â
But deep down, a part of you tells you it isnât that simple anymore. Â
And maybeâjust maybeâhe knows it too. Â
âAre you busy?â Jakeâs voice sounds more tired than usual, heavy with an overwhelming amount of tension.Â
âNever too busy for our calls,â you easily reply without hesitation as you lay back in your bed, phone close to your ear. Your voice is light, a stark contrast to the weariness laced in his, and when he doesnât respond with his typical chuckle, you immediately sense his mood. âHard day?âÂ
He exhales slowly, the weary sound answering your question. Today was a lot. Hours of rehearsal followed by a concert, the adrenaline rush of performing, followed by the chaos of having the guysâ hotel information leaked. Crowds of paparazzi and fans swarmed the entrance, the relentless flashes of cameras breaking through whatever little pieces of calm he had left within him. The noise, the pressure, the endless cycleâall spiraled into a mental mess he doesnât seem to shake.Â
The second he settled into his hotel room, all Jake knew was that he needed to talk to youâthe one person who could steady his racing thoughts.Â
"I just...I didn't think this would get to me, you know? The cameras, the people, the flashes in my faceâI'm justâit's like I'm never alone."Â Â
Your heart twists at the vulnerability and rawness in his voice, as if heâs admitting something for the first timeânot just to anyone else, but to himself.Â
"IâI don't know. Sometimes I wish I could just disappear, just for a little while. Just to breathe, you know?"Â Â
You close your eyes, your grip on the phone unconsciously tightening as if it could anchor him somehow. Â
"I know it's not the same," your voice steady, even as you internally ached for him, "but...you can disappear with me, Jake. Even if it's just through the call. No cameras. No noise. Just...you and me."Â Â
He lets out an exhaleâshaky, but relieved. Â
"You're really good at this. Making me feel like it's all gonna be okay."Â Â
"Because it is going to be okay, Jake," you reply softly. "You're not alone, Jake. Not with me."Â Â
"Yeah," he murmurs, his voice barely above a whisper, and he wishes more than anything else in this moment that he actually was with you. âI know.âÂ
"Jake," you groan, sitting cross-legged on your bed, staring at the flustered boy through your laptop screen. "I'm begging youâjust wear the black jacket. It's literally impossible to mess up black."Â Â
"But what about the beanie?" He whines as he pops back into view, his face scrunched up in genuine distress. "Do you think I can pull it off, or will I look like I'm trying too hard? Be honest, Y/N."Â Â
What started as a simple fashion-advice-question over the phone turned into a two-hour wardrobe emergencyâall because Jake couldnât figure out what to wear to the airport the next day (because, apparently, airport fits matterâhis words, not yours).
"Jake, you could wear a literal trash bag to the airport and fans would still lose their minds," you tease, biting back a laugh.Â
He rolls his eyes at you, but the smile tugging at his lips says otherwise. Â
"Okay, but seriously, youâre trying too hard. Just go with the jacket, no beanie," you add on, just to end this two-hour long madness. Â
"Hmm," Jake plops on his bed and turns towards his phone camera, and you swear you can see the pout forming on his lips. "But I already posted a preview of the jacket last week. Isn't that, like, repetitive?"Â Â
"Jake,â you blink at him, "it's an airport. Not a fashion show."Â Â
He stares at you for a beat, then lets out a dramatic sigh, "Fine! Jacket, no beanie. But if I see even one criticizing comment calling me basic, I'm blaming you."Â Â
You laugh, shaking your head at his ridiculousness, "Deal. Now go to sleep, Sim Jaeyun."Â Â
His grin softens as he adjusts the camera to fully look at you, pout gone, eyes glistening.
"Only because you said so."Â Â
"Hey," you say softly, answering the call as you snuggle deeper into your blanket, letting it engulf you completely.
The familiar sound of Jake's quiet breathing fills the space between you, and before he even says a word, you already know. Â
"Rough day?" You ask gently when he doesnât say anything after a few seconds.Â
"Yeah," he murmurs, his voice quieter than usual, almost drowned out by the low hum of background noise. "I just...I don't really feel like talking right now, if that's okay."Â Â
"Of course," you reply without hesitation, your tone gentle, no questions asked.
On the other end, Jake presses the phone closer to this ear in an attempt to feel closer to you, instantly feeling better from your pure understanding of how heâs feeling, and he thinksânot for the first timeâthat you might be his favorite person in the world. Â
The warm silence engulfs the both of you like a shared blanket, unspoken yet understood. You can hear the faint echoes of his surroundings: the muffled laughter of the boys somewhere nearby, the distant honk of traffic outside his hotel, and then the quiet shuffle of Jake shifting positions in his hotel bed. You catch his breath catching slightly, like he's finally allowing himself to relaxâto just be. Â
You don't try to fill the silence. You know that he needs thisâa moment of peace in the chaos. Instead, you similarly press the phone closer to your ear, as if doing so can somehow bridge the miles between you, hoping he can sense your presence reaching out for him.Â
Minutes pass like this, and for a moment, itâs so quiet you begin to wonder if he's falling asleep. But then, a deep exhale breaks the stillness.
"Thank you, Y/N," he says finally, his voice low but steady, carrying a weight of sincerity that makes your heart clench. Â
"You don't have to thank me, Jake," your voice matches his softness. "You know that."Â Â
"Still," his voice is low, so quiet, it feels like a secret meant only for you. "I appreciate you. More than you probably know."Â Â
You smile to yourself, your heart aching in the best way possible, and you desperately try your best to ignore it, no matter how much excitement it brought you.Â
"Always, Jake."Â
âTell me something about you that I donât already know,â you challenge him, your voice carrying that light and endearing tone over the phone that Jakeâs come to crave.Â
âHmm,â Jake hums thoughtfully as he lies in his bed, eyes closed, just simply treasuring the small moments, like this one, with you.Â
Even though itâs definitely 3AM where he is right now. And he definitely has to be up in a few hours for rehearsal.Â
Oh well, completely irrelevant. Talking about everything and anything with you just felt so right.Â
âI donât know,â he eventually exhales, his brain too foggy to think of anything logical right now. âI feel like you know me better than I know myself at this point, Y/N.âÂ
âYouâre so corny it physically hurts, Jake,â you scoff, and Jake swears he can feel your exaggerated eye roll from thousands of miles away.Â
âOhâwait, wait! I have one,â he perks up, his eyes shooting open as he turns towards the phone in excitement.Â
âHit me,â you say, unconsciously smiling at how cute he sounds.Â
âIâm allergic to flowers.âÂ
The line falls silent for a beat before you erupt into a storm of giggles so wild it makes Jake feel sick from how fast the butterflies in his stomach start fluttering.Â
âThatâs your fun fact? Thatâs so tragic, Jake,â you gasp through your giggles. âLike, depressingly tragic.âÂ
âHey! Itâs not that sad, it could be worse,â Jake hopes you can hear his pout over the phone (you can).Â
âSo youâre telling me youâve never bought a girl flowers before?â You tease, smiling to yourself as you stare at your ceiling.Â
âGuess not,â Jake lets out a laugh, which surprises himself. âJenn used to always get mad at me for never getting her any, but what am I supposed to do? Show up with a bouquet and an epi-pen? I literally start tearing up whenever Iâm around any kind.âÂ
You lose it all over again, your laughter spilling through Jakeâs phone like sunshine, and Jake doesnât even realize heâs smiling so widely until his cheeks start to ache.Â
But what Jake does realize is something unexpected: for the first time in forever, he can talk about Jenn without a single pang ofâŠanything. No weird tension, no lingering sadnessâjust a casual mention and thenâŠnothing.Â
Itâs freeing, this feeling of lightness, like an invisible weight he didnât know he was even carrying has suddenly lifted. He wonders if this is what moving on really feels like, if heâs found his emotional freedom. He wonders when it changed.Â
He wonders maybe itâs not whenâmaybe itâs who. Â
And he wonders if itâs you.Â
Today was supposed to be Jakeâs day off. The golden ticket to rest, recharge, and not think about anything.
Key term: supposed to be.
Instead, Jake found himself knee-deep in the trenches of emotional warfareâand losing spectacularly.
The morning started innocently enough. No alarm, no schedule, just the soft promise of freedom that was so close within his reach. But by noon, Jake came to a harsh realization.
Freedom was a lie.
Because every step, every sight, every breath, was haunted by one inescapable thought: You.
It started with a boutique. Him and the boys had wandered down a cobblestone street in a city that Jake had already forgotten the name ofâcity number ten or eleven of tour? He barely knew anymore. But then his gaze caught on a mannequin in the window.
Big mistake.
The outfit on displayâsimilar to his mindâhad you written all over it. Immediately, his brain spiraled.
Y/N would love that. She'd probably drag me and all the guys in and force me to hold her bag while she tried it on.
He had to physically stop himself from dragging the group inside to purchase it on the spot.
Next? A coffee shop. And there it was: a poster featuring some limited-edition iced peach latte. Jake froze, staring at it like it held the answers to life itself.
Youâd love it. You would order it, (well, you'd make Jake order it, because you hate talking to cashiers), sip it, smile, and probably rant about how overpriced it wasâeven though Jake would pay for itâyet youâd still finish the entire thing.
And then, you'd steal half of his drink, too.Â
Because you always did.Â
And Jake always lets you.
The final straw? A cat. Just a random stray, peacefully lounging on a sunny part of sidewalk, looking like it had zero interest in the world around it. And even that didn't escape Jake's you-obsessed filter. Without even thinking, Jake whipped out his phone.Â
It was instinctual at this point.
Jake [1:06PM]: (attached - one image) Jake [1:06PM]: thought you'd like this one :)
Because obviously, you needed to see that cat. Immediately.
By the time Jake collapses onto his hotel bed that evening, he feels like heâd run a mental marathonâexcept instead of a finish line, every road led back to you.
He flops onto his bed, hoping sleep would save him from the storm raging in his brain.
Spoiler alert: it doesn't.
Instead, it leads him to the complete opposite. He stares at your name on his phone, your contact picture, your last messages to him.Â
You texted him two hours agoâa sweet goodnight message that ended with your usual, 'Don't hesitate to call if you need me.'Â
Casual. Normal.
But it probably didn't mean, 'Hey, please interrupt my sleep from the other side of the world so we can discuss your ongoing emotional crisis over me.'
Don't do it, Jake. The remaining rational brain cells within him beg him to stop. You're being dramatic. She's not the air you need to breathe.
But at the same time, deep down, Jake really thinks you are.
The worst part? You two already had talked on the phone earlierâwhen Jake had another fashion crisis and couldn't decide what to wear for his day off exploring with the guys. Of course, you laughed at him, teased him, but then helped him pick something out anyways. Typical.
Personally, if it was up to him, he'd spent his whole day off on the phone with you. Talking about everything. Or nothing. Whatever you wanted, Jake would've done it, no hesitation.
Don't do it, Jake, his brain warns him again. What kind of obsessed-lunatic calls the same person twice in one day?
Answer: Jake.
But as Jake lies in his hotel bed, thoughts heavily clouded with the image of you and the sound of your voice, he realizes...this wasn't just a phone call thing. No, this was deeper, worse. And somewhere between staring at the same patch of ceiling and replaying every memory of you on a mental loop, Jake tries to rationalize it.
Sheâs just a good friend, Jake. A best friend, even! You think about her a lot because sheâs cool and funny andâŠand she has the laugh of a Disney princess...But itâs normal to think about your friends, right? Right??
But the more he tries to downplay it, the clearer it becomes. This was something else.
And then it hits.
Like, really hits.
Oh my god. I like her.
Jake shoots upright, widened eyes filled with horror, as if the realization itself just physically smacked him across the face.
No, no, no, no, no. This canât be happening.
Jake buries his face in his hands, groaning. But the groan quickly turns into a muffled scream, because the more he thinks about it, the worse it gets.
Because he thinks you're going to be the death of him. He really, really likes you. Not in the vague, 'Oh, sheâs cute' way, but in the write-her-name-in-a-heart-and-doodle-little-stars-around-it kind of way. The stare-at-her-texts-like-theyâre-poetry kind of way. The imagine-her-laughing-at-your-dadâs-jokes-and-enjoying-your-momâs-meals-forever kind of way.
And this feeling? It's new. It's terrifying.Â
It's exhilarating.
Jake realizes in this very moment that he's never experienced this heart-pounding, face-flushing, breath-taking kind of feeling towards anyone. Sure, his past relationship had been meaningful in its own way, but now Jake is realizing that the foundation of his past relationship was tangled up in obligations and unspoken expectations. A tightrope act of Jake having to be the perfect boyfriend, the perfect idol, the perfect...everything. He never realized how suffocating it was until nowâuntil you. Because this feeling with you?
This was pure. Simple, clear, and undeniable.
Your sheer existence proved that it's possible for someone to understand him better than he understands himself. Your laugh had a way of making everything feel lighter, like the weight of the world had been momentarily suspended. Just one look from you alone somehow always manages to make him feel like he was still worthy even on his worst days.
With you, Jake felt...himself, for once. Not Jake Sim, global popstar. Not Jake Sim, the boyfriend of so-and-so. Just...Jake.
Jake's heart pounds as the realization sinks in. He's now transitioned from screaming into his hands to his poor hotel pillow.
Because as clear and strong as this feeling is, the doubt is just as overwhelming. What if you don't feel the same? What if this ruins everything?
But at the same time...what if you do feel the same way?
What if this is his chance? The butterfly effect that changes everything? What if you're it? You have to be.
And so, like an idiot possessed, Jake's finger is one millimeter away from pressing call on your name again.
Because, obviously, the best way to deal with overwhelming feelings is to confess them from a hotel room five countries away.
Obviously.Â
Because what if he didn't call? What if he spent the rest of his night spiraling into an endless pit of unspoken feelings and overthinking, arms flailing as he knows the only way out of the pit is with your help?
What if his brain explodes with the sheer amount of feelings he has for you and he never has the chance to tell you ever again?
He presses call.
The line rings twice before you answer.
"Jake?" Your voice is soft, laced with surprise and just the faintest trace of sleep. "It's late for you, is everything okay?"
Jake's brain short-circuits. What time even is it for him? He has no idea, and frankly, he doesn't care.
"Yeah," he blurts, far too quickly that he winces at himself. He clears his throat before trying again, "I mean, yeah. Everything's fine. I just...couldn't sleep."
"Oh," you hum softly and Jake swears the sound alone could single-handedly resolve global wars.
Yeah, he definitely likes you.
"Is something stressing you out?" The genuine concern in your voice makes his chest tighten.
"Noâwell, nothing like that," Jake rushes to assure you, sitting up straighter in bed now, as if you could see him. His voice lowers, almost shy, "I just...I was thinking about you."
Silence. Jake's heart pounds so loudly, he's sure you can hear it through the phone.
"About me?" You finally tease, light and playful, but there's something softer underneath. "What did I do to deserve such an honor?"
Jake lets out a nervous, breathy laugh, running a hand through his hair, âYou exist. Thatâs what.â
Another pause. He hears you exhale softly, and the sound alone sends his heart into overdrive.
"That was smooth," your voice is quiet, soft, as if teetering on the line of teasing and nervousness at the same time. "Ten out of ten, Jake."
"I'm serious," Jake tries his best to keep his voice from cracking, the weight of his feelings pressing down on him. "I was lying here, thinking about everything, and I realized something."
"And what's that?"
Jake's throat goes dry. His heart is screaming at him to say it, but his brain begs him to reconsider.
But Jake's sure he's lost all his rational brain cells for sure at this point, so he swallows hard, and braces himself for impact.
"I like you, Y/N."
The words spill out, raw and unpolished, but so utterly true.
âI mean, I really like you," Jake continues, his voice barely above a whisper now. "More than a friend, more than anything.â
The line goes silent, and for a split second, a lifetime of pure awkwardness and torture of not having you in his life anymore flashes in his vision, and he rushes to fill the void.
"I know this is probably the worst timing ever, and probably really scary...and it's okay if you don't feel the same way," his voice definitely cracks this time, laying everything bare, but he doesn't care anymore. "But I had to tell you. I can't pretend around you, not when being around you feels like the only time I'm really me."
Then, you let out a soft exhaleâa disbelieving, breathless sound that makes Jake's heart skip a beat.
"Jake..."
"You're...you're everything, Y/N. You make life better just by being in it. And I haven't even seen you in four months, but you're all I think about," Jake lets out a small laugh, swallowing the remainder of all his pride and dignity. "I promise, when I'm back...I'll prove it to you. I'll show you how much you mean to me. Anything it takes. "
For once in his life, Jake feels completely vulnerableâand yet, strangely, it feels right.
Because he means it, every word.
He's never meant anything more.
The line had gone quiet after Jakeâs confession, his words echoing in your ears.Â
âI like you, Y/N.âÂ
No, not like. Really, really like.Â
You spent the last few days replaying his words over and over, dissecting every syllable, every tiny inflection in this voice. At first, it didn't even seem real. Â
A part of you still thinks it isn'tâthat this is all a cruel dream and you're going to wake up any second now back in the real world. The one where Jake Sim, the boy who turns heads and steals hearts without even trying, didn't just confess his deepest, most vulnerable feelings for you in a single phone call.Â
But no. He said it, alright. Clear as day. Â
First, all you felt was pure happiness. Maybe it was hearing his voice everyday, or maybe it was seeing how his face lit up through the screen when you picked up his video callsâbut somewhere along the way, you knew it was something deeper.Â
Something that made your heart skip when his name lit up your phone, something that left you craving his voice to make your day feel complete. And now? Now the boy whoâd effortlessly become your favorite part of every day was telling you youâd done the same for him.Â
But then, came the fear.Â
Because what if this was just a rebound? What if you were just a soft landing for him, a way to patch up the holes left behind by his past? Here you were, standing at the edge of something terrifyingly real, wondering if you were just a step in his recovery processâa way to fill the cracks, but not the kind of permanence you were beginning to crave.Â
You werenât naive enough to see Jakeâs past relationship didnât still linger in the corners of his mind. Youâd seen him struggle with it before, how hard heâd tried to convince himself he was fine. What if you were just the next step in his healing, rather than something realâa Band-Aid for a wound that wasnât even yours to heal?Â
And worseâwhat if you let it happen? What if you let yourself fall, only to hit the ground at an alarming speed, and...splat. Not just a regular, embarrassing tumble, no. But the kind that leaves you flattened on the pavement like a cartoon character who ignored every warning sign.Â
Because thatâs exactly what it would feel like, wouldnât it? Giving it, letting yourself hopeâonly to crash and burn spectacularly.Â
Deep down, you knew you werenât just risking a little heartache. Because Jake? Jake had quietly claimed a permanent spot in your heart at this point.Â
You were risking everything.Â
And the worst part?Â
You were already halfway there.Â
That was the reason why you told him you needed time. The reason why all you could manage to respond was a meek, 'I just...I need to think about this.' And to his credit, Jake hadn't pushed. Of course, not. Â
But now, three days later, you were no closer to an answer. If anything, the time apart had made everything worse.Â
Because as the days stretched on, with every passing hour, every text you didnât send and every call you didnât make, one thing became gut-wrenchingly, undeniably clear:Â
You were already his.Â
You miss Jakeâs voice, his laugh, the way he rambles about the most random things late at night. You miss how, somehow, he made you fall asleep with a smile on your face from the other side of the world. You miss him, that even in his absence, he was still your first thought in your mind when you woke up and the last before you drifted to sleep.Â
And no amount of overthinking or second-guessing could change the truth that finally settled in your chest like a secret you werenât ready to admit to yourself:
You were his. Completely.Â
The only question now was whether youâd let yourself believe he was yours too.Â
"Y/N?"Â Â
"Jungwon," you groan helplessly into your phone. "Help me."Â Â
A pause. Then, "Are you sure you meant to call me? It's Jungwon, not Jake," he teases lightly. "I can go get Jake if you meantâ"Â
"Jungwon!" You cut him off, panicked. "I'm being serious. It's about Jake, dummy."Â Â
"Oh," his tone shifts instantly as he senses the seriousness in your voice. "Did something happen? Because I swear, for the past three days, Jake's been moping around like a kicked puppy, and I was gonna ask you about it because I know you guys have been talking a lot more, but I didn't want to push, andâ"Â
"That's exactly it, Jungwon!" You wail into your pillow, your voice muffled. Great, now you feel even worse, knowing Jake is moping around, waiting for you. Â Â
"What's exactly it?" Your best friend presses, voice curious. "I need specifics, Y/N."Â Â
You hesitate, the words clinging to the back of your throat like they're too heavy to admit. Finally, you take a deep breath and force them out. Â
"Jake told me he likes me, Jungwon. Like really, really likes me. He gave this whole monologue about how I'm all he can think about, and it was so cute, and it made me want to explode from joy and fear all at once, and I don't know what to do!"Â Â
A beat of silence.Â
Jungwon sucks in a dramatic breath and then, "Wait, wait, wait. Back up. First of all, this is not news to me."Â Â
You blink, as if he can see your look of shock over the phone, "What?"Â Â
"This was obvious, Y/N. The guy's been smitten with you for months. You guys literally have been talking every day since we left."Â Â
Your jaw drops, "So what? You and I talk every day! How is this any different?"Â Â
Jungwon snorts, "Y/N, we text every day. About minuscule things. Like me reminding you not to forget your keys and you ghosting my last text. But you and Jake? You guys talk for hoursâinto the illegal hours of the night, mind you. Trust me, I know. Hotel walls are thin."Â Â
You feel your cheeks flushing, "That doesn't mean anything."Â Â
"Doesn't it?" Jungwon's voice is laced with amusement. "When's the last time you called me just to hear my voice?"Â Â
"Jungwon."Â Â
"Exactly."Â Â
You groan again, "But Jungwon, what ifâŠwhat if he's not over Jenn? What if I'm just a rebound?" Â
Jungwon goes quiet for a moment, his tone softening when he finally speaks, âJakeâs not like that, Y/N. You know that. He wouldnât tell you he likes you unless he meant it.âÂ
âYeah, butââÂ
âLook," he interrupts. "Jakeâs a lot of thingsâannoyingly loud, for oneâbut heâs not the kind of guy whoâd use someone, especially you, as a rebound. If he said he likes you, he likes you.âÂ
You bite your lip, his words settling over you like a warm blanketâbecause you know they're true. Â
âAnd for what itâs worth,â Jungwon continues, âI think you like him too.âÂ
âI..,â you falter, your heart hammering in your chest. âI do.âÂ
âThen what are you waiting for?âÂ
You sigh, a small smile tugging at your lips despite the nerves coiled in your stomach, âI donât know. I guess Iâm scared.âÂ
âThatâs okay,â Jungwon says gently. âBut donât let fear stop you from something that could make you happy. You deserve that, Y/N. And so does Jake.âÂ
You close your eyes, letting Jungwon's words sink in. Deep down, you know he's right, he always is. Â
"Thanks, Jungwon," you say, your voice softer now, tinged with gratitude. Â
"Anytime," he replies, and then, with a teasing lilt, "But seriouslyâyou should probably tell him soon. I can't stand watching him mope around like a sad, abandoned puppy. It's seriously tragic, like, to the point where Iâm gonna have to start letting him win at Mario Kart."Â Â
A small giggle escapes you, light and genuine for the first time in three days, "I know, I know. Eventually."Â Â
"Y/N," his voice turns playfully stern, like a parent lecturing their toddler. "Eventually isn't a time. Just call him. You've been thinking about him nonstop, haven't you?"Â
Unfortunately, Jungwon knows you too well. Your silent response betrays you, and Jungwon lets out a triumphant hum. Â
"Thought so. Well, you should go. You have a call to make."Â Â
You sigh, a mix of nerves and a new determination bubbling, "Okay, okay. But if this goes horribly wrong, I'm blaming you."Â Â
"It won't. But deal," his tone is reassuring, confident, like he already knows how this story ends. "You got this, Y/N."Â Â
The call ends, and the quiet still of your room taunts you. For a moment, you sit there, staring at your phone, the little icon of Jake's contact pictureâa selfie the two of you took together many years agoâstaring back at you like a challenge. Â
Your fingers hover. Your heart races, your palms feel clammy, and your stomach twists. Â
But then you remember Jungwon's words. Â
You deserve this. Â
And so does Jake. Â
You take a deep breath, then you press down on his name. Â
The phone doesn't even reach the second ring before he picks up. Â
"Y/N," Jakeâs voice is rushed, a little breathless. Â
"Hey," you say softly, suddenly unsure where to start. "Um, were you busy?"Â Â
"No, no," he quickly responds. "Not at all. You could call me at 3AM, and I still wouldâve picked up."Â Â
"That's unhealthy, you know," your lips twitch as you lay back in your bed, taking a deep inhale. You missed thisâyou missed him. Â
"For you? Worth it," you can hear the smile in his voice, but along with the slight tension just beneath itâthe faintest tremor that tells you he's been waiting for this call, maybe agonizing over it just as much as you have. Â
You swallow hard, gripping the phone tight, "Jake, about...our last call..."Â Â
"Take your time," he says gently, though you don't miss the way his voice wavers ever so slightly. "I mean it, Y/N. There's no pressure."Â Â
You exhale shakily, closing your eyes, âIâve been thinking a lot, too. About you. AboutâŠus.âÂ
Jake stays silent, but you could hear the faint sound of him shifting, like he was bracing himself.Â
You squeeze your eyes hard, as you let the words finally come out, "I like you too, Jake. A lot. So much, honestly. It's just..."Â Â
"It's just...?" Jake's voice repeats softly, as if that's all he can manage to let out in the midst of his nervousness. Â
You hold your breath, scared of what you're about to admitâto Jake and to yourself.Â
"It's just...I'm scared," your voice comes out barely above a whisper, "I'm scared that this is too good to be true. That you're saying all of this because...I don't knowâyou're trying to move on...from the past, or because you're lonely on tour, orâ"Â
"Y/N,â Jake's voice cuts through firm, but gentle. Â
"You're notâŠa rebound, or a distraction, or anything like that," he starts quietly, each word deliberate. "And this isn't about...Jenn, or me being lonely, or whatever else you think. This is about you." Â
Your breath hitches as you take in his words and open your eyes, hoping that staring at the ceiling above you could somehow ground you. Â
âYouâre the one who makes me laugh when Iâve had the worst day,â Jake continues. âYouâre the one I want to talk to, even when Iâm running on zero sleep. Youâre the one I think about when Iâm on stage and wish I could just look into the crowd and see you there. Itâs you, Y/N."Â Â
His words are overwhelming, too much, and you're unsure how to even process them. Your throat tightens, and you can feel the subconscious tears prickling at the corners of your eyes without even realizing they were forming. Â
"Are you sure, Jake?"Â Â
"More than anything else, Y/N," he says immediately, like the words have been waiting on the tip of his tongue. "And I want to do this right, Y/N. No rushing, no expectations. Just...tell me what you need from me, and I'll do it. Whatever it takes, I'll do it."Â Â
The sincerity in his voice makes your chest ache. You can picture him on the other side of the line, sitting in some unfamiliar hotel room, his brows probably furrowed in that adorable way they always do whenever he tries to find the right words. Â
You bite your lip, a small laugh escaping despite the tears sliding down your cheeks, âYouâre so cheesy, you know that?âÂ
Jake lets out a small laugh, immediately easing from the tension that hung in the air. Â
"Only for you," he mumbles, his voice soft but steady. Â
You sigh, the sound reaching Jake on the other side. There's a pause, a moment of mutual understanding in silence, just listening to the quiet, peaceful hum of each other's breathing. Â
âJake?â You say finally, your voice trembling.Â
âYeah?âÂ
âI thinkâŠâ You take a deep breath, and you think your heart is about to break out of your chest. âI think I want to try too.âÂ
The silence on the other end was electric, and for a moment, you think maybe the call dropped. Then, you hear the unmistakable sound of Jakeâs laughâsoft, relieved, and filled with so much warmth that it instantly makes your own heart feel lighter.Â
âYou're driving me crazy, Y/N,â he says, his voice almost breathless, but tinged with humor. Â
âYeah?âÂ
âYeah,â he says, a smile clear in his tone. Â
âI hope I am,â you quip, and it makes him chuckle, the sound warm and full of relief. âGuess Iâm stuck with your cheesy lines now huh?âÂ
âStuck with me?â Jake repeats, pretending to sound offended. âNo way. Iâm stuck with you, Y/N. And trust me, Iâm not going anywhere.âÂ
His words are so simple, yet so full of promise, and it leaves you feeling a little breathless.Â
âGood,â you whisper, your cheeks warm. âBecause I donât want you to.âÂ
âHi Jake,â your voice bright as you immediately pick up his call and see his face appear on the screen, his expression softening when he sees you.Â
âHey pretty,â he replies, without missing a beat, his voice laced with a soft fondness that never fails to make your stomach flip.Â
You roll your eyes, failing miserably to hide the blush rising to your cheeks, âOh, so now Iâm pretty, huh?â
Jake smirks at your words, leaning closer to his phone, âNah, youâve always been pretty. Just didnât have the guts to say it to your face before.â Â
You groan, dramatically planting your face into your pillow as an attempt to bury the smile on your face, your voice muffled, âYouâre gonna be the death of me, Jake.â
âStop that, donât hide. Let me see your face,â his tone dips somewhere between playful and pleading, and you give in, lifting your head just enough for him to catch a glimpse of your red cheeks.Â
âCute,â he says with a knowing grin, leaning back against the headboard of his bed.Â
âWhatever,â you murmur, but the smile on your face remains. âHow was your day today?âÂ
âMmm, it was good,â Jake says, running a hand through his messy hair. âBusy, but good. I forget how loud the fans get each time. But itâs nice. Makes it feel worth it, you know?âÂ
âIâm glad,â your smile grows as you watch him speak, feeling nothing but proud of him. âYou deserve all of it, Jake.âÂ
âStop,â now heâs groaning, throwing a hand over his face to cover his shy expression. âYouâre going to make me blush.âÂ
âMm, looks like you already are, Jakey,â you shake your head, laughing softly.Â
âMaybe a little,â he admits as he peeks at you through his fingers, his grin boyish and infectious, and you canât help but laugh again.Â
The call falls quiet for a moment, but itâs not awkwardâjust comfortable, like a shared breath. Jake shifts, turning on his stomach and propping his phone up against some pillows to make sure you can still see him.Â
âI miss you,â he says suddenly, and thereâs something raw in his tone, something unguarded that catches you off guard.Â
Your heart stutters.
âJake, I literally called you this morning,â you tease, your tone light and sweet. But still, you canât resist, âI miss you too.â Â
âYou donât sound convincing enough,â his eyes narrow at you, the pout forming on his lips quickly turning into a small smirk. âSay it like you mean it.âÂ
âFine,â you huff, rolling your eyes. âI miss you so, so much Sim Jaeyun, that itâs physically painful and I might conbust on the spot if I donât see you soon. Happy?âÂ
âVery,â he grins into the camera, making your heart beat faster. Ugh. "But please don't combust for me. Who else am I supposed to call every day?"Â Â
"Oh, please, you'd survive," you shoot back, smirking. "I'm sure anyone else would be more than happy to fill the spot."Â Â
Jake clicks his tongue, shaking his head dramatically. "Nope, no one could keep with you, Y/N. You're a handful."Â Â
"Excuse me?" You scoff, mock offense all over your face. "You're calling me a handful? Jake, who's the one that texts me random song lyrics at 3AM and expects me to interpret their deep meaning like it's poetry?"Â Â
"Okay, first of all, they are deep," he argues, his grin widening into something boyish and utterly unfair. "And second of all, I know you secretly love it."Â Â
You let out a laugh as you roll onto your side, propping your phone against the pillow next to you. Â
"Maybe I do," you admit with a shrug, trying to sound nonchalant despite the smile on your face. "Or maybe I don't. That's up to you to find out."Â Â
Jake shakes his head, laughing softly, his eyes twinkling as they linger on your face.Â
"You really are a handful, Y/N," his voice teases while his eyes remain on you through the screen, as if studying you, and it makes your stomach flip. Â
You glance away, suddenly feeling shy again under his unwavering gaze, "Stop looking at me like that."Â Â
"Like what?" His voice is innocent, his eyebrows lifting in feign obliviousness. Â
"I don't knowâlike you're trying to memorize my face or something," you mutter, your cheeks burning. Â
"Maybe I am," his voice dips, low and soft. "Honestly wouldn't complain if that's the last thing I ever got to remember."Â Â
His words hit you square in the chest, and despite how ridiculously corny they are, they manage to take your breath away. You don't know if you'll ever get used to this newly discovered side of Jakeâthe one that speaks so candidly, so sweetlyâlike you're the only person in his universe. Â
But honestly? You love it. You love how he makes you feel, how his words wrap around you perfectly like they were tailor made just for you. But as much as you love it, you fear it too. Â
Because the more you fall into this feeling, the more you wonder if there's anything solid beneath it. Despite all the soft words shared and sweet nothings exchanged, at the end of the day, deep down inside you can't help but ask yourself if his words, if he, is even yours to begin with.Â
"Jake..."Â Â
"Hmm?" His voice is gentle now, the teasing edge in his voice fading. Â
"You really mean it, don't you?" You ask, your voice quieter now, the question laced with your vulnerability. "You're serious about...this? About us?"Â Â
"Of course I am," he answers without hesitation. His soft eyes stay trained on you as he sits up in his spot in bed, as if to show just how serious he is. He lets out an exhale, as if mentally encouraging himself to continue, "I know we're not...whatever this is, officially yet. But I do know that I like what we have."Â Â
He brings his phone closer, a small smile on his face, his expression earnest, "And that I like you. A lot."Â Â
You swallow hard, his words settling in your chest in the best way possible. Because despite everythingâthe doubts, the undefined boundariesâyou can't deny the truth of how you feel. Â
"Me too," you admit, your voice steady and honest. "I like what we have too. And I like you."Â Â
You pause, a small smile tugging at the corner of your lips as you feel the remainders of your walls crumbling down, "You make me happy, Jake. Like annoyingly happy."Â Â
"Good. Because you make me happy too," His smile spreads wide, the kind that is contagious and could light up an entire room. "Annoyingly happy, if we're being specific."Â Â
You roll your eyes again, though you're smiling just as much, "We really are insufferable, aren't we?"Â Â
"Oh, completely," Jake nods, his tone playful. He's more relaxed, back to leaning against his headboard as he looks at you with a softened gaze. "We'll figure it out, Y/N. I promise. Whatever this is, or whatever it becomes, I'm not going anywhere. And honestly? I just can't wait to see you. Finally."Â Â
"Me too," you perk up, your eyes sparkling with excitement as you bring your phone closer, "It feels like it's been forever. This tour feels so much longer than the other ones for some reason."Â Â
"It does," Jake hums in agreement, his eyes thoughtful. "But you know what? I think It's because, this time...I actually have something waiting for me. Somethingâor someoneâI want to come home to. And that makes every day feel so much longer."Â Â
You think, at this point, you should check yourself into the emergency department for the sheer amount of times you thought your heart was going to pound out of your body from Jake's words alone. Â
âYou're ridiculous," you laugh, the sound bubbling out so naturally you couldn't hold it back even if you tried. "It's getting kind of out of hand how cheesy you are, Jake."Â Â
"And yet," he fires back with a smirk, "you love it. Admit it. I've cracked the code."Â Â
"Maybe I do," you tease, repeating your words from earlier as the corners of your mouth tug up into a smile you can't suppress. "But don't let it get to your head."Â Â
"Too late," he grins. "It's already there."Â Â
Jake [2:15AM] : can I call you?  Y/N [2:16AM]: jake isnt it like 2AM for you?  Jake [2:16AM]: wellâŠyea but I was thinking about you soâŠÂ
Your feet are kicking before you even realize, and before you can type up a response, your phone lights up with Jake's name and contact picture.Â
âHi,â you answer softly, trying not to let the giddy smile growing on your face take over.Â
âHey pretty,â he greets, voice warm and easy as he brings a hand through his messy hair. The lights in his room are off, and the dim glow of his phone screen casts a soft light over his features, making him look unfairly good for someone who should be fast asleep. Â
âYou have two seconds to give me a good reason why youâre here talking to me instead of getting a good nightâs rest before your concert tomorrow,â your eyes narrow in mock disapproval as you give him a knowing look. Â
Jake laughs lightly, âHey! Okay, hear me out. I couldnât sleep, so I did something.â Â
You raise an eyebrow, âYou did something? That sounds ominous, Iâm scared.â Â
âYeah. For you,â he states plainly, leaving you even more confused for a second more before he continues. âI made you a playlist.â Â
Your brain stalls at how simple he says itâso casual, as if not packed with so much meaning. Â
âA playlist? Youâwait, why?â Â
Jake shrugs, âI donât knowâI guess I just wanted you to hear what I hear when I think about you. Which, by the way, is a lot. So..â Â
You blink at the screen, your mouth slightly agape at the boy who's watching you with that lopsided grin that makes it practically impossible to function. You scramble to collect yourself, but the more you try, the worse it gets, and by now, you think he definitely took some secret class on how-to-make-Y/N-completely-flustered. Â
And aced it. Â
And of course, he noticesâbecause Jake always notices. Â
âYou okay there?â His voice breaks you out of your overwhelming thoughts, his teasing tone laced with curiosity. Â
âDefine okay,â you mutter, rubbing a hand over your face in an attempt to cool down the warmth spreading like wildfire across your cheeks. âBecause if it means not feeling like a complete fool over a guy whoâs halfway across the world, then no, Iâm absolutely not okay.â Â
Jake lets out a low laugh, the sound affectionate as he leans closer to the camera, the light reflecting off his shining eyes, âIf it helps, youâre not the only one losing your mind here.â Â
âOh yeah?â you arch an eyebrow, âWhatâs your excuse, Sim?â Â
âMy excuse?â He tilts his head with a small, exaggerated frown, pretending to think. âHmmâŠletâs seeâŠIâm hopelessly into this girl who somehow makes being teased fun, who makes me smile just by hearing my name come out her mouth, and whoââ Â
âOkay! Stop, stop, enough,â your voice strangled as you try to talk through the fit of giggles you couldnât hold down. âYouâre gonna kill me, Jake. Like, actually. Iâm not strong enough for this.â Â
Jake laughs at your flustered reaction, holding up a hand of surrender, âFine, fine. But seriously, look.â Â
You hear the sound of faint typing in the background before your phone buzzes with a text containing a link. Â
âItâs called Songs That Remind Me of Y/N. Creative, right?â Â
You open the link, and your thoughts are dazed at the sight of the endless playlist of songs. Some new to you, some you recognizeâall of them feeling like little pieces of Jake's heart he's handing to you. Â
"I think it's perfect," you murmur softly, scrolling through the titles, the warmth and appreciation for him now feeling almost too overwhelming. Â
"Yeah?" Jake's eyes shine with a mixture of pride and hope as he watches your reaction. Â
"Yeah," you repeat, switching your phone screen back to his face and giving him a genuine smile. "I love it. Thank you, Jake."Â Â
Jake hums in response, the look on his eyes gentle as a beat of comfortable silence falls between you two. Â
"Well, I should probably sleep for real now, but...listen to it when you miss me, okay? Because chances are, I'm probably doing the same."Â Â
You pause, letting the weight of his words settle over youâvulnerable, yet undoubtedly honest. "Deal. I'll listen to it right now, then."Â Â
"Good," his smile grows, eyes crinkling at the corners. "Because I am too. I miss you, too."Â Â
You both linger for a moment, neither wanting to end the call just yet, simply enjoying each other's pure, raw presence. Â
"Sweet dreams, Jake," you finally say, your voice gentle as you slowly let sleep take over.Â
"Only if theyâre about you," he quips, grinning. Â
You roll your eyes, your chest feeling lighter, "Go to bed, Sim."Â Â
"Yes, ma'am," he winks, and with one last fond look, he ends the call, leaving you smiling at your screen like the absolute fool he's turned you into. Â
"I can't believe you're finally coming back tomorrow," you murmur into the phone, your voice soft but buzzing with excitement as you take in the sight of Jake sprawled out on his bed. The dim glow of his phone highlights just enough of his face to remind you how impossibly cute he isâeven with the pillow creases on his cheek. Â
"I know," Jake sighs dramatically, flopping onto his side. His head sinks into the pillow, and you hear a soft fwump as he shifts to find a comfortable spot. "I just wish I wasn't landing so late. If I could, I'd come see you the second I land. Like, bags in hand, running to your door."Â Â
"You'd probably trip and knock yourself out with your carry-on, Jake," you snort but then smile, the imagine of Jake rushing to get to you playing in your head. Â
"First of all, I'm very athletic," Jake raises an eyebrow, pretending to be offended. "Second, that's exactly what would happen, but at least I'd be unconscious on your doorstep, which is still closer to you than I've been in months."Â Â
Your heart does a little flip at the sound of the sincerity in his voice as you try to keep your tone casual, "It's okay, Jake. I'm not going anywhere. We'll see each other the next day? If you're free, maybe."Â Â
Jake's face softens in that stupidly adorable way he always does when he knows you're just trying to play it cool. "Free or not, I'll find a way. Nothing's stopping me from seeing you, Y/N. Not jet lag, not my schedule, not even my manager if he tries to barricade me in the building."Â Â
A giggle escapes you, partly at his sheer determination and partly to cover up the butterflies constantly causing the havoc in your stomach when it comes to him. And Jake, of course, looks all smug, like he knows exactly what he's doing to you. Typical Jakeâsweet, determined, and impossibly endearing. Â
But as much as his words make your cheeks warm, there's another reason why you're holding back your smile. Â
Because, despite what Jake thinks, you're going to see him much sooner than he expects. All thanks to a message you got earlier from the group's manager:Â Â
Y/N! Hope youâre doing well! We all miss you and canât wait to see you soon! As you know, the boys are returning tomorrow late at night, but the staff and I want to plan a little surprise party at their apartment, they have no idea. The teamâs already prepping everything. Weâd love for you to comeâit wouldnât be the same without you. 10 PM! See you!Â
You're practically vibrating with excitement, each passing minute on the call with Jake making it harder and harder to not just blurt it out and tell him you'll be seeing him in less than 24 hours. And, somehow, hearing his sleepy voice on the other side of the call, completely oblivious, just makes it even harder to contain yourself. Â
Jake's brows furrow as he watches you try (and fail) to suppress your grin, "What's up with you? You're smiling so much, and I'm pretty sure I didn't say anything that funny."Â Â
"Me?" You blink innocently, even though your heart skips a beat. But you shrug casually, masking your smile with a feigned yawn. "Nothing's up, you've just been acting too cute tonight. That's all."Â Â
"You're lucky you're cute," Jake narrows his eyes at you, but even you can see through the dim lighting the red creeping across his face, "And that I'm tired. Or else I'd call you out for how you're gaslighting me right now."Â Â
"Gaslighting?!" You sputter out, breaking out into laughter. "How am I gaslighting you for calling you cute?"Â Â
"Because I know you're hiding somethingâ" Jake replies, his pout audible in the way his voice drags. He yawns mid-sentence, the soft sound and the image of his eyes fluttering closed making your heart melt. "âand you're using my sleep-deprived state against me. It's not fair."Â Â
"I'm not hiding anything!" You protest, your face one second away from cracking into a guilty smile. "Go to sleepâyou're barely holding it together over there."Â Â
"Like I'd ever fall asleep on you," he mutters, his voice heavy with drowsiness. "You're way too important for that."Â Â
His words hit you like a train, and you have to physically restrain yourself from squealing, burying your face in your pillow before you let out a strangled, "Okay, enough sap for one night, Romeo. Go to bed."Â Â
"Mmhm, fine, fine," Jake hums before he yawns again. "Goodnight, pretty. Dream sweet dreams, okay?"Â Â
You let out a breath, losing the last remaining bits of your composure at this pointâbut in the best way possible, of course. Â
"Goodnight, Jakey. I'll see you soon."Â Â
The day flies by in a whirlwind of anticipation and sheer chaos, the emotional hurricane brewing up inside you rooting from one source and one source only. Â
Because ever since you woke up this morning, every step, every sight, every breath was haunted by one inescapable thought:Â
Jake. Â
The morning was a blur of pacing around your room like a Sims character who was glitching after being told to "Go Here", overthinking every possible scenario for how tonightâwhen you finally see Jake in personâcould go down. Â
Because, reallyâhow exactly do you approach the boy you've been friends with for years, who you've fallen for, in a room filled with people, including yours and his closest friends, all while pretending your heart is trying its hardest to not control, alt, delete itself? Â
Not exactly something you can Google. Â
Like, do you hug him? Does he hug you? What if he doesn't hug you? (Unacceptable, you decide, before pacing faster.)Â Â
By the time afternoon rolls around, you're about 78% sure you've developed three-and-a-half migraines from the sheer pressure of it all. Not to mention, the borderline illegal amount of caffeine coursing through your veins isn't helpingâwhy did you think drinking four cups of coffee was a good idea? (You didn't. Your brain has officially gone rogue.)Â Â
And now, here you are. The buzzing apartment of the boys is alive with the sounds of laughter, the crinkle of party streamers being hung up, and two staff members arguing about where to put the over-dramatically large "WELCOME HOME" banner. You, along with everyone else, await for the signal, passing time by keeping up small conversation with the friends and staff you've gotten to know over the yearsâall the while you desperately try to keep your nerves from causing a mental crash out right here and now. Â
Eventually, one of the staff gets the alert that the group has landed and is minutes away, the energy immediately shifting, both in the apartment and mentally. You settle in place in the back of the crowd, near the door but not too near the doorâbecause 1) you're 99.99% sure you're not emotionally stable enough to be front and center, and 2) the staff and camera crew are already hogging the entrance as if this was the world's greatest comeback (and spoiler alertâto you, it really is.)Â Â
The lights dim, the chatter fades, and the room hums with anticipation. And meanwhile? Your heart won't. Stop. Pounding. Â
Any second now. Â
Your nerves bubble up even more than you thought is humanly healthy, and you're not sure if you're about to a) pass out, b) puke, c) or both.
Simultaneously. Â
The sound of multiple footsteps echoes faintly in the hallway, followed with muffled voicesâone of them the unmistakable sound of Jake's laughter. Your breath catches. Â
And then the door swings open. Â
"SURPRISE!" Â
The boys freeze in the doorway, their suitcases still in hand, the looks of genuine, yet pleasant, confusion plastered on all their faces. Sunghoon's eyes dart to the snacks table, Jay looks like he's deciding whether to laugh or roll his eyes, Sunoo is on the verge of tears, and JakeâJake looks beautifully, stupidly confused. Â
Your eyes immediately find Jake's face, like some natural gravitational pull you can't fight, and suddenly it hits you: he's here. In front of you. No blurry video calls, no glitchy Wi-Fi interruptionsâjust Jake. Â
It feels surreal, like you're living in a sugar-induced dream that you aren't sure of is real yet or not. Last time you saw him in person, he was merely just Jake, one of your best friends, your go-to guy for bad jokes and late-night rants about life. But now? Now he's Jakeâthe boy who's somehow become the main character of your life (and brain capacity) over the past five months. Â
Every memory of your late-night calls, every teasing smile, every time his sweet, groggy voice promised he'd prove himself to youâit all comes rushing back. Like those cheesy montage scenes in a rom-com, except instead of a whimsical romantic song playing in the background, it's the sound of your brain, and heart, screaming WHAT NOW Y/N?!Â
But then, finally, his eyes land on you. Â
The moment your eyes meet, you think your lungs give up on life. Breathing? Never heard of it. It's like someone hit the pause button on the entire universe, and you're convinced that the only thing to ever exist is Jake looking at you with that soft, unreadable expression. Â
But you manage half a second of calmâhalf a secondâbefore that softness on his face disappears. Just as quickly as it appeared, it's replaced by...something else. Something you can't quite put your finger on. Something you've never thought could exist on his face. A flicker of...conflict? Hesitation? Like he's staring straight at youâŠbut also from miles away at the same time. Â
His jaw tightens slightlyâso slightly only you would notice with how intently you're looking at himâand for a split second, his hands fidgets at his side before he quickly clasps it over the handle of his suitcase. And right as you process it, right as you're about to convince yourself it's just the million grams of caffeine rushing through your blood that's making you hallucinate and see thingsâÂ
He looks away. Â
He looks away. Â
He looks away. As if you're not even standing there, as if he didn't just short-circuit your entire brain. His attention shifts to the nearest staff member, greeting them with a quick nod, and suddenly he's smiling and laughing at something they're saying like nothing just happened. Â
And just like that, the universe hits the play button again, and you're left standing thereâstaring, blinking, wondering if the last thirty seconds of your life was, indeed, a caffeine-induced hallucination after all. Surely. Right? Â
Because Jake definitely didn't avoid you on purpose. Nope. Because that would be insane. Insane, you think to yourself, as the invisible angel on your shoulder continues to whisper into your ear the same sweet words Jake's been telling you the past five months about how much he cares for you, how much he likes youâremember all those times he said it? Â
Right. Right. Of course, he does. But still, you stand there frozen, trying to ground yourself, even though your hands start fidgeting at your sides anyway. Great. Fantastic. Cool, cool, cool. This is fine.Â
You mentally curse yourself for not being closer to the door after all, and then, you mentally curse every single person in this room for not magically gaining telepathic powers and knowing that you, personally, were trying to have a moment. Â
It's fine. You'll find him again. He's just too preoccupied with all the staff members and people to greet. Busy Jake. Social Jake. You're just imagining things. Definitely. Â
Trying to distract yourself, you glance around the apartment, everything suddenly feeling suffocating. Maybe a snack. Maybe a drink. Maybe a portal to another dimension.Â
Shaking your head out of your spiraling thoughts, you bite the inside of your cheek to ground yourself and turn away from the crowd, quickly settling yourself near the beverage table, pouring yourself a cup of...whatever this isâyour mind too cloudy to even bother looking at the sign on the table.
You don't know how much time passes, and frankly, you don't even know if you're fully conscious. Your mind is still living in the past, lingering in that moment where you locked eyes with Jake for the first time in five months, and despite all the overthinking you did this morning of all the possible scenarios that could happenâthis was not one of them. Â
You're about to pour yourself a second drink just to keep your thoughts busy when you feel a tap on your shoulder. Â
"Y/N!"Â Â
Before you can fully turn around, you're engulfed in a warm hug, the familiar scent of Jungwon's cologne immediately grounding you, "Oh god, I missed you. Took me forever to find you with all these people."Â Â
"Jungwon!" You exclaim, a genuine smile lighting up your face despite the emotional tug-of-war in your chest, because, of course, leave it to your best friend to immediately ease your inner panic. You squeeze him back, playfully ruffling his hair as you pull away, "I can't believe they made you grow out your hair. Now you actually look older than me for once."Â Â
He stares at you, blinking. "Y/N. I am older than you."Â Â
"Literally by a week. We all know I'm mentally older," you deadpan, crossing your arms. Â
"Okay, I take it back. I didn't miss you after all," he scoffs as you laugh, pulling him into another hug for good measure just to annoy him. Â
"I'm so glad you guys are back," you say as Jungwon grabs the drink in your hand and takes a sip himself as he listens to you. "I was dying of boredom without you guys."Â Â
Jungwon raises an eyebrow, "Uh-huh. Definitely didn't sound like boredom all those nights you called Jake at 2AM."Â Â
You freeze. Oh. Great. The one topic you were trying to avoid (how you were going to avoid itâgiven you're at his literal apartment, with his literal group members, and literal staff members that all work for himâyou're not sure. Avoidance was a doomed plan from the start, I fear). Â
But before you could answer, Jungwon continues, "So...are you guys, like, a thing now? I know you guys were just talking this whole time, but now that we're back, are you guys gonna be in a relationship and all that stuff? Because if so, I need a heads-up. As much I love you both, I don't know if I can stand you two being all couple-y right in front of meâoh, and alsoâ"Â Â
"Jungwon."Â
"âif he hurts you in any way, I swear to god I will not hesitate toâ"Â Â
"Jungwon!"Â Â
He stops, wide-eyed, before flashing you a sheepish smile. "Sorry. But seriously, what's happening? You haven't given me any updates!"Â Â Â
You open your mouth to respond, but the words get caught in your throat. Because if he had asked you yesterdayâor even an hour agoâyou would've been able to answer confidently. But now? After Jake's apparent Olympic-level avoidance of you? You're not so sure anymore. Â
"I...I don't know," you mumble, the words barely audible. Jungwon tilts his head, leaning closer to catch them. Â
"What do you mean, you don't know? You guys haven't talked about it?" His brows furrowing as he studies your face, clearly picking up on your hesitation in true best friend fashion. Â
"I, uh, I haven't...seen him yet," you admit, hoping the crack in your voice doesn't reveal the real reason you haven't approached the boy in question. "Everyone's busy, and I didn't want to get in the way."Â Â
Jungwon gives you a look like you just said the earth is flat. Â
"Get in the way? Y/N, you're insane. This is the guy who's been counting down the days to see you. If anything, everyone else is in his way."Â Â
You give him a helpless shrug, but Jungwon isn't having it. He grabs your shoulders and spins you around, pointing across the room to one of the other snack tables past the crowds of people.
"Look. He's right there. Alone. Perfectly free to talk to you. Go."Â Â
Your eyes land on Jake, back facing you and Jungwon, casually scooping chips into a bowl. You hesitate, scanning his relaxed posture, and the knot in your stomach tightens. Because that's exactly the problem. He's perfectly free. And if he's so excited to see you, how come he hasn't spoken to you yet? Â
But before you can voice your doubts, Jungwon gives you a not-so-gentle nudge forward, "Go talk to him before I carry you over there myself."Â Â
And next thing you know, Jake's right there. In front of you. His back is to you still, his eyes scanning the various snacks lined on the table, completely unaware of the full-on mental breakdown occurring just behind him. Â
This is your moment, you tell yourself, despite the endless alarms going off in your brain. Every single nerve in your body is on high alert, screaming at you to abort mission, abort! But before you can give in to your panic, your hand is already reaching out, lightly tapping his shoulder. Â
"Jake!"Â Â
Jake turns around, and for a momentâa fleeting, fragile momentâyou catch it. The way his eyes widen slightly at the sight of you. The way his lips part as if they're about to break into that familiar smile you've missed for months. But just as quickly, similar to earlier, it vanishes, replaced by that flicker of hesitation, and it's enough to make your breath catch. Â
"Y/N."Â Â
Your name on his lips used to sound like a warm promise. Now?
Now it feels like an afterthought.Â
His voice is calm, steadyâtoo steady, stripped of every ounce of emotion, and not at all like someone who's been counting down the days to see you. He rubs the back of his neck, his gaze flickering to the crowd behind you before reluctantly meeting yours, "It's been so long."Â Â
Your stomach sinks. That's all he had to say? You were completely wrong. You spent precisely 23 minutes of your morning debating if he was even going to give you a hugâbut now? Screw the hug, he won't even give you a full sentence. Something's off, and your mind races to figure out what happened, as if you missed a major chapter of your own life. Â
Trying to ignore the sharp pang of something lodging itself in your chest, you offer a small smile, hoping to break the tension. Â
"Are you...okay? I thought...I don't know, I thought you'd be more excited to see me," the words spill out before you can stop them, and you want to crawl into a self-dug hole from how raw and vulnerable you feel. Â
Jake shifts uncomfortably, glancing at the floor, then at you, "No, yeah, of course I am. I'm just...really tired. The flight, you know. And all this," he pauses to gesture at the environment around you two, "it's a lot."Â Â
You stare at him in disbelief, waiting for him to crackâsilently begging for some sign of the Jake you thought you knew. But all you get is a shrug. Â
A shrug. Â
Suddenly, his words feel like a punch to the gut, let alone the way he can't even fully look you in the eyes. In just those few seconds, the invisible angel on your shoulderâwhose voice sounded just like Jake'sâwhispering those promises into your ears suddenly disappeared with no trace in sight, as if it was never thereâas if it was never yoursâin the first place. Every late-night call, every whispered promise, every shared laugh.Â
As if they never belonged to you. Â
You swallow hard, trying to keep the growing lump in your throat from choking you, hoping your emotional turmoil isn't blatantly obvious to the boy in front of you. Â
"Right," you murmur, nodding as if his excuse makes perfect sense. But it doesn't. "That's...understandable."Â Â
The silence that follows is suffocating. Not the comfortable kind of warm silence you two used to share, but the awkward, unbearable kind that makes you claw at your own skin and makes you wish the ground would open up and swallow you whole right then and there. Â
Jake shifts again, and for a moment, his eyes meet yours. There's something thereâbut before you can grasp it, a voice from the crowd calls his name. Â
"IâI should go," he mutters quickly, stepping back. His voice is quiet, his tone almost apologetic, but his words feel like he's hammering the nails to your coffin. "I'll...see you later though, yeah?"Â Â
He doesn't wait for an answer. He's gone before you can say anything, before you can process his words, and for the second time that night, he leaves you standing there with your heart in pieces and your thoughts in chaos. Â
For a moment, you swear you're paralyzed. You can't move. Can't breathe. Your vision blurs as every doubt you'd buried for months comes rushing back, screaming in your face louder and crueler than ever. You've never felt smaller, more foolish. Â
Your heart beats erratically now, fighting against the realization of the truth settling in your chestâa heaviness so suffocating it threatens to take you under. The Jake who stood in front of you just nowâguarded, distant, a strangerâwas so unlike the boy who had made you laugh until your sides ached, who'd stayed up with you on countless late nights, sharing secrets no one else knew. Â
The Jake who made promises. Â
Your mind spirals. Maybe...maybe those promises were never meant to be kept. Maybe they were just words to fill the time. Â
Maybe you were just someone to fill the time. Â
Your breath starts to pick up and you're frantically scanning the room, desperate for an escape from your thoughts through any familiar face. Your eyes finally land on Ni-ki and Heeseung casually sitting on one of the couches, their carefree laughter a stark contrast to your inner implosion. You beeline to them, forcing a smile on your face as you plop down beside them. Â
"Y/N!" Ni-ki grins the moment he spots you, scooting over to make room. "Where've you been hiding? Thought you ditched us for good."Â Â
"I've been here,â you give the boys a small smile, praying they don't notice the way your hands tremble as you sit down, âjust...mingling."Â Â
Heeseung raises an eyebrow at the faint crack in your voice, but doesn't push further, "Well, we all missed you. Pizza pig-out sesh and games tomorrow? You can tell us everything we've been missing out on."Â Â
You laugh, trying to keep the conversation light, but it comes out shaky, your voice tight under the weight of your hidden emotions, "I think it's you guys who need to catch me up."Â Â
Ni-ki tilts his head, narrowing his eyes at you, "Are you okay? You look...off. Whatâdid someone spill punch on you? Lemme guess, was it Jake?"Â Â
At his name, the knife in your stomach twists even deeper, and you look away, hoping they don't notice the way your face falls. Â
But Heeseung notices. Of course. His gaze sharpens, the playful teasing in his expression replaced with a softened concern, "Y/N...what's going on?"Â Â
"I'm fine," you reply a little too quickly, your voice a little too high. You plaster a smile on your face, turning back towards the two boys, concern written all over their faces. "Just tired. Long day."Â Â
Neither of them look convinced, but before Heeseung can say anything else, Ni-ki nudges him and gestures towards something across the room. Â
"Hey...isn't thatâ"Â Â
You follow Ni-ki's gaze, and you immediately wish you didn't.Â
Because just like that, your world crumbles. Â
There she isâJenn. Â
You're not even wondering when she got here, how she got here, or even why she's here in the first place. No, not even. Â
Because all that's occupying your mind right now is the way she's there, perched comfortably on Jake's lap on one of the couches in the distance, her arm draped casually over his shoulder. Â
The way she's laughing freely at something he says, her hand lightly brushing against his as if it's second nature, her fingers briefly pushing a strand of hair away from his face. Â
The way Jake doesn't even flinch, the way he doesn't pull away. Â
The way he smiles at her. Â
That same smileâthe one you've spent weeks convincing yourself was yoursânow feels like a cruel joke. Â
And that does it. For the first time that night, despite all you endured, you shatter. Â
You force yourself to look away, but it's too late. Your chest hollows out deeper and deeper with every passing second, until all you're left with is a final realization:Â Â
Maybe you never really had him at all. He was never yours in the first place. Â
Ni-ki and Heeseung exchange glances before looking at the expression on your faceâall the color drained, as if you were merely just a body, paralyzed. Both of them open their mouths, but nothing comes out, clearly unsure of what to say, but you don't give them the chance. You're already standing, grabbing your bag at your side with trembling hands. Â
"Y/N, waitâ" Heeseung starts as both him and Ni-ki stand up with you, but you shake your head, his voice distant and muffled as if he's speaking to you underwater. Â
"I need some air," you mumble, but you're sure neither of them hear you, your voice barely above a whisper. Â
Before they can stop you, you're already weaving through the crowd, your vision blurring as you fight the overwhelming urge to break down. You stop at the door, your eyes quickly scanning the cluttered floor for your shoes. For a moment, you think you've made itâescaped the suffocating air and heartbreak clawing at your throatâbut a mistake you didn't mean to make stills you. Â
You glance over your shoulder, and there he is. Â
Jake's eyes meet yours, and the world comes to a stop. His easy smile slips from his face and is immediately replaced by a flicker of panic, his brows drawing together as if he's just realized something, but you don't stick around to analyze it. Â
Not when your heart is already in pieces on the floor. Â
You quickly look the opposite way, fighting the sting of burning tears threatening to spill over as your fingers fumble desperately with the zipper of your coat when you hear a concerned voice from behind you. Â
"Y/N?" Jungwon's familiar voice cuts through your haze, his hand resting lightly on your shoulder. "Whatâwhere are you going?"Â Â
"Home," you whisper, avoiding his gaze as you finally manage to get your coat on, turning towards the door. Â
Suddenly, Jungwon steps in front of you, a firm frown on his face, "Hey, hey, what's wrong? Talk to meâ"Â Â
"Jungwon, I need to go," you look up at him as your voice cracks for the nth time that night, feeling Jake's set of eyes on you still, "Please, Won."Â Â
He hesitates, clearly confused but more worried over anything else, "Okay, but I'm driving you."Â Â
You sigh, shaking your head, "No, it's fineâ"Â Â
"I'm driving you," Jungwon repeats, leaving no room for argument as he's already grabbing his coat and walking out the door. Â
Not bothering to look behind you to see if Jake's still watching, you follow Jungwon out to the hallway, the chill of the air feeling like a fresh wave of emotions crashing over you all at once: embarrassment, anger, heartbreak. Â
You're too caught up in your spinning thoughts to even notice the sound of frantic footsteps behind you until a voice cuts through the silence. Â
"Y/N."Â Â
His voice is quiet, almost drowned out by the muffled hum of music and laughter seeping from the party you should've escaped from a long time ago. Â
But still, you hear it anywayâbecause of course you do. Because it's him. And no matter how much you wish you didn't, you'd silence the entire world just to hear that voice. Â
And you hate it. Â
You hate how your entire body freezes mid-step, you hate how every nerve within you comes alive at the sound of his voice, you hate how your heart stumbles, as if trying to root itself in the pain you've been trying so hard to outrun. Â
You turn around slowly, against every ounce of logic telling you to keep walking. And when your eyes land on himâon the raw, desperate, almost broken look on his faceâyou hate yourself even more. Â
Because even now, even after everything, your heart still sinks at the sight. And you hate how you give him the power to break you with just one look. Â
âCan we talk?â Jake asks, his voice low and unsteady as he takes a small step towards you. Â
From beside you, Jungwon hesitates, his gaze flickering between you and Jake. After a beat, he nods, "I'll get the car. Wait here."Â Â
He spares Jake a final look of warning before nudging you for comfort and stepping into the elevator. Â
The elevator doors close, leaving you and Jake alone in the hallway, the air thick with unspoken words and emotions. Â
You swallow hard, your throat tight, but you steel yourself, "What do you want, Jake?"Â Â
You shift your weight and instinctively cross your arms, a defensive barrier between you and the boy you spent too long letting into your heart. His eyes meet yours, and for a moment, the vulnerability in them makes your resolve falter.Â
He takes a hesitant step towards you before exhaling shakily, running a hand through his hair. Â
âIâI messed up tonight. I didnât mean to...," he trails off, his words fumbling, his eyes searching yours in desperation, his heart breaking at the way your tears are a second away from falling over.Â
"...to completely ignore me all night? Make me feel like nothing?" You finish for him, your quiet voice breaking despite your attempt to stay composed. Â
"No. God, no. You're not nothing," he says quickly, his voice faltering on the last word. "Y/N, you matter so much to me."Â Â
âWell it definitely didn't feel that way,â your voice is barely audible, but you finally look up at him, the hurt finally bubbling to the surface. âAfter everything you saidâpromised, everything we talked aboutâŠâÂ
"I know, I justâ" he hesitates, his voice barely above a whisper. He takes a tentative step closer, his movements slow and careful, like he's afraid you'll break if he gets too close. "I was nervous."Â
"Itâs been so long, and I didnât know what to say, how to act. I wanted to get it rightâto make it perfectâbut instead, I justâ" he stops, dragging another frustrated hand through his hair. His eyebrows knit together in that familiar way that once made your heart flutter, but now only adds to the ache in your chest.Â
You let out a hollow laugh, the bitter sound foreign even to your own ears, âWell, congratulations, Jake. You managed to mess it up anyway.âÂ
âPlease,â he looks devastated, his hands trembling at his sides. âY/N, please donât think I donât care about you. I do. More than you know. I justâI don't know how to do this. I panicked and I didn't mean to hurt you, I swear."Â Â
"Then why was...," you look at him, your eyes still stinging from all the unshed tears as you take a shaky breath, â...why was she all over you tonight? Why didnât you stop her?âÂ
He falters, his shoulders slumping under the weight of your question, âIt wasnât what it looked like. I didnâtâI couldnâtââÂ
âYou couldnât,â you echo, the words spilling out in a rush now, each one cutting him deeper. âI should've known. Let me guess, she wants to get back together, right?"Â Â
Jake's silence is deafening, and it immediately answers your question. He opens his mouth, but nothing comes out. The way he looks at youâeyes wide and filled with regret, lips trembling as if searching for the right wordsâconfirms everything you were afraid of.Â
You squeeze your eyes shut, a shaky breath escaping your lipsâa sound caught somewhere between a scoff and a choked sob. No matter how hard you try, the wall holding back your emotions cracks under the weight of it all. The doubts youâve tried so hard to bury suddenly resurface, crashing over you like waves, each one carrying the sting of every insecurity, every fear youâve ever had about this moment. Your chest feels tight, your heart splintering under the realization that everything you were afraid of might be true.Â
"Jake, I can't do this," you whisper, shaking your head. "I can't be the person you lean on while you try to figure out what you want."Â Â
"No, noâY/N, I do know what I want," he pleads, his voice cracking as he tries to step closer. "And itâs you. Always been you, Y/N. Everything I saidâI meant it."Â Â
His words hang heavy in the air, the faint echo of the party music filtering through the cracks in the door and into the quiet hallway. You look away, refusing to let him see the way your tears finally spill over. Â
"You promised," you let out softly and slowly, through your sniffles. âYou promised you wouldn't hurt me. You said you'd prove that I could trust you, that I didn't have to be scared. You knew I was worried, Jake. And you...you hurt me anyways."Â Â
"And I swear I meant every word I said. I still do," Jake says, his voice desperate as he shakes his head. He steps even closer, his hand reaching out and brushing against yours, but you pull back before he can close the distance. "You have to believe me. Please, Y/N. You're the only one."Â Â
You shake your head again, the tears now freely rushing down your cheeks despite your best efforts, "IâI don't know if I can believe that anymore, Jake. I want to, I really, really do. But tonight..."Â Â
Jakeâs face falls, the weight of your pain crashing into him all at once. His lips tremble as he struggles to hold himself together, his eyes turning glassy themselves. The sight of youâbroken, because of himâcuts deeper than he thought was humanly ever possible. His voice is barely above a whisper, raw and pleading, âY/N, Iâm so sorry. IâGod, please. Please give me a chance.âÂ
You look at himâat the boy who became your safe space these past few monthsâand all you feel is the ache in your heart. Â
"I can't do this right now, Jake," you finally let out through your broken voice as you take a step back. "I think I just need space."Â Â
The words hang in the air like a death sentence. His breath hitches as if your words physically hit him in the face, "Y/N..."Â
Your phone suddenly buzzes, a text from Jungwon letting you know he's outside. You glance down at it, then back at Jake. For a moment, you hesitate, your heart screaming at you to stayâto give him the chance he's yearning for. But your brain knows better.Â
"I have to go," you murmur softly, as you take a final step back, turning away before more tears threaten to spill all over again. You force yourself to keep walking, fighting the overwhelming urge to look backâto let him pull you into his arms, where you wished so desperately you belonged. Â
Frozen, Jake watches helplessly as you walk away, his chest tightening with every step you take. Everything feels like it's caving in, regret clawing at him the more he lets you walk further away. He opens his mouth to say somethingâanythingâbut the words fail him, silenced by the weight of his own mistakes. Â
To Jake, the sounds of the party are now far in the distance, drowned out by the pounding in this ears. Instead, the hallway falls into a haunting silence, broken only by the faint echo of your retreating stepsâa cruel reminder of what he's just let slip away. Â
The car ride starts in complete silence, the only sound between you and Jungwon the soft hum of his engine and the faint sound of whatever playlist he was playing in the background. You stare out the window, watching the city lights blur together, your coat clutched tightly under your grasp as if it's the only thing keeping you sane. Â
Jungwon glances at you out the corner of his eye, his hands steady on the steering wheel. He doesn't say anything at first, but you know him well enough to sense the storm brewing in his head. Â
"Okay," he finally says, as if on cue, breaking the silence. "Spill."Â Â
You don't respond, your eyes still fixed on the surrounding city breezing by you, as if the passing view could somehow erase the memory of him. Your fingers dig further into the fabric of your coat, your knuckles going numb. Â
Jungwon gives you a few more moments of silence, but when you don't make any sign of responding, he speaks up again.Â
"Y/N," his voice softens, but the edge of his concern cuts through. "Don't do that thing where you shut people out. Especially me, you know I hate that."Â Â
"I'm notâ" you start, but your voice wavers, and the lie dies on the tip of your tongue. Â
âYou are," he exhales sharply from beside you, his grip on the steering wheel tightening. "Look, you don't have to tell me everything, but don't pretend you're fine when you're clearly not."Â Â
The words sit heavy in the air as you swallow hard, your throat burning as you finally whisper, "It's stupid, Jungwon."Â Â
He doesn't take his eyes off the road, but his tone is firm, "I'm sure if it's got you looking like this, it's not stupid."Â Â
You want to argue, to tell him to just let it go, but the hurt pressing down on your chest is too much. The ache in your body threatens to take over again, and you hate it. You hate how the tears form again, how you can still see Jake looking at you like that, like you were breaking right in front of him and he didn't know how to stop it. Â
Jungwon waits. He doesn't push, because he knows you. He knows you're just hurting, struggling to grasp your overwhelming emotions, so he gives you the time you need. But his quiet patience is unbearable, like he's peeling back every layer of your resolve just by being there, and eventually, you give in. Â
"It's Jake," you finally choke out, the name tumbling from your lips like a curse. Â
Jungwon doesn't respond immediately, but you can feel the shift in his demeanor. His jaw tightens, and his fingers flex against the wheel, "I figured as much honestly, after what I saw in the hallway, but what exactly happened, Y/N?"Â Â
You shake your head, your voice shaky, "It doesn't matter. IâI just feel so stupid, Won. Like, how could I think..."Â
You trail off, biting the inside of your cheek hard enough to draw blood. Jungwon gives you a softened glance, signaling you to continue whenever you're ready to. Â
You take a deep breath before you speak up again, "How could I ever think I was good enough for him, you know?"Â Â
There's a silence that follows after your words and you hear Jungwon take in a deep inhale. Â
"This isn't on you, Y/N. This has nothing to do with whether you're enough or not," Jungwon's voice is steady, but there's a firm edge to it now. "Look, I don't want to overstep or anything...and I definitely don't want to vouch for himâespecially right now but...are you sure he's not just freaking out?"Â Â
You tilt your head over at the boy next to you, "Freaking out about what?"Â Â
"You," Jungwon says simply like it's the most obvious thing in the world. Â
"That doesn't make any sense," you start shaking your head. "Why would heâ"Â Â
"Because you're you," Jungwon interrupts, his tone matter-of-fact as he keeps his eyes trained on the road in front of him. "And Jake's a complete idiot, but even idiots get scared when they care about someone as much as he clearly cares about you."Â Â
You blink, Jungwon's words sinking into all the cracks formed within you, "You really think he cares about me that much?"Â Â
âAre you kidding?â Jungwon scoffs, his expression a mix of disbelief and exasperation. âY/N, the guy looks at you like you hung his moon and stars. Trust me, Iâve seen it.âÂ
And you don't know what comes over you, but Jungwon's words hit you like a punch to the gut, and suddenly, the tears you've been holding back come rushing forward, hot and relentless. You cover your face with your hands, your body shaking as the sobs you've been swallowing all night finally make their way out. Â
Jungwon quickly looks over at you and, without hesitation, glances over his shoulder to pull over to the side of the road, the soft clicking of the hazard lights mixing in with your cries. When he finally puts the car in park, he doesn't say anything and just leans back in his seat, his hand resting lightly on your shoulderâclose enough to remind you he's there, but not too much to smother you. Â
"I'm sorry," you manage to gasp out between sobs, your hands going up to wipe your face as all the overwhelming emotions finally take over you. Â
"Don't," Jungwon says firmly, "Don't apologize for feeling like this."Â Â
You take a shaky breath, trying to pull yourself together as your sobs eventually start to slow down, "I just don't understand. If he cares so much, why does this hurt so bad?" Â
"I don't think it's about how much he cares," Jungwon sighs, as if carrying your pain alongside you. "Sometimes...sometimes people care so much that they don't know what to do with it. They panic. They overthink. And they mess up in the worst ways because they don't know how to handle what they're feeling."Â Â
You look up at him, your face still wet with tears, "So you're saying it's an excuse."Â Â
"No," Jungwon replies, quickly shaking his head fervently. "Definitely not an excuse. Jake screwed up, Y/N. Big time. And it's 100% on him to fix that, not you. Butâ"Â Â
He pauses and thinks for a second, his words deliberate, "âit doesn't mean his feelings aren't real. Or that he doesn't care about you."Â Â
You look away, glancing down at your hands in your lap, fiddling with the hem of your coat as you take in Jungwon's words. Â
"It's just feels like...like I'm the only one who got hurt here, Won. Like I'm the only one who..," you trail off, unable to form your thoughts into a coherent sentence, but leave it up to Jungwon to always fully understand you. Â
"You're not the only one," he says softly. "He's hurting too, Y/N. Maybe not in the same way, and maybe he doesn't deserve any sympathy, but I can see it. I've seen it. Jake...Jake isn't Jake without you. And honestly? That idiot is probably tearing himself apart right now."Â Â
Your lips part, but the words don't find you. Instead, you let the weight of Jungwon's words sink in, unsure what to do with how true they may be. Â
"You don't have to forgive him right now," Jungwon adds after a moment. "Hell, you don't even have to forgive him at all. Honestly, that might satisfy me just a bit. But maybe...maybe you owe it to yourself to hear him out. Not for him, but for you."Â Â
You turn to Jungwon, your lips forming into the smallest pout, "But what if it just makes everything worse?"Â Â
He gives you a faint, grounding smile, equal parts reassuring and honest. Â
"Then you walk away knowing you did everything you couldâfor yourself. And if it does come to that," he shrugs lightly, "we'll figure it out together."Â Â
You're quiet for a long moment, the thought of walking away from Jake and everything he means to you terrifying youâŠbut you know Jungwon's right. You owe yourself the chance to tryâeven if the unknown outcome fails you. Â
With a shaky breath, you nod, brushing away the last of your tears, "Thanks, Jungwon."Â Â
"You're welcome," Jungwon hums in acknowledgement before his lips curve into a small grin, the atmosphere lightening slightly, "but, uh, could you at least use the tissues in the glove compartment before my seats turn into a snot rag?"Â Â
You manage to let out a small scoff of disbelief as you roll your watery eyes, "You're the worst."Â Â
"Nah," Jungwon replies with a cheeky grin as he shifts the car back into drive, but not before he reaches over to ruffle your hair playfully. "C'mon. Let's get you home."Â Â
The knocking at Jungwonâs door comes at the worst possible moment.Â
Heâs halfway through organizing his deskâsomething he only attempts when heâs too frustrated to sit stillâand the last thing he expects to see when he swings the door open is Jake, standing there looking like he hasnât slept a millisecond all night.Â
Jungwon makes no sign of saying anything or making a move, just staring at the older boy in question. Jakes shifts uncomfortably, running a hand through his messy hair, not used to seeing Jungwon in this sour, expressionless mood. Â
"Hey," Jake finally says, his voice hesitant. Â
âWhat do you want?â Jungwon deadpans, leaning against the doorframe, arms crossed tightly over his chest. He knows he sounds harsh, but, frankly, he doesnât care. Â
Jake falters for a moment, his gaze dropping to the ground, "I...I need your help."Â Â
Jungwon's eyes narrow, "With what, exactly?"Â Â
He knows what, but he's not letting Jake off that easily. Not after last night. Â
"With Y/N," your name hangs in the air between them as Jake's voice cracks, and Jungwon clenches his jaw before he lets out a frustrated sigh. Â
"I don't think you're in any position to be asking me for help right now."Â Â
"I know," Jake says quickly, his hands raising in surrender. "I know, okay? I screwed up big time. IâGod, I don't even know where to start, Jungwon. I just...I don't want to make things worse."Â Â
Jungwon lets out a bitter, humorless laugh, stepping back and motioning his head to let Jake enter his room, "You've already got a good head start on that, I see."Â Â
Jake steps inside, awkwardly hovering near the door as Jungwon moves to sit on the edge of his own bed. He doesn't offer Jake a seat, and Jake doesn't ask for one. Â
"She cried, you know," Jungwon says after a few moments of silence, his voice stone cold. "I had to pull over because she couldn't even hold it together long enough for me to get her home. I've known her my entire life, and I don't think I've ever seen her cry that hard, Jake."Â Â
Jake flinches, the words physically hurting him, "I didn't mean toâ"Â Â
"Yeah, I know," the younger boy cuts him off, his voice sharp, his anger rising on behalf of you. "You didn't mean to hurt her. But you did. And now you're asking me to help you fix it like it's that easy."Â Â
"It's not easy," Jake mutters quietly, his hands fumbling with the edge of his hoodie. "Nothing about this...none of it is easy. But I know I messed up, and IâI can't just leave things like this, I can't lose her, Jungwon. I care about her too much."Â Â
Jungwon deadpans at his friend, fighting back the urge to scoff in his face, "If you cared about her, you wouldn't have let her walk out of that party looking like her entire world was falling apart."Â Â
Jake looks up, his eyes red-rimmed and filled with something Jungwon can't quite name...desperation, maybe. Or guilt. Or both. Â
"I didn't know what to do," Jake finally admits, his voice still barely above a whisper, as if admitting to himself for the first time, too. "I saw her, and she looked so...broken. And IâI panicked, I didn't know what to do, and by the time I realized, she was gone."Â Â
Jungwon leans back, groaning as he runs a hand over his face. The anger bubbling within him hasn't fully faded, but he knows there's something else nowâsomething softer, something that makes it harder to keep his protective guard for you up. Â
Because he knows Jake isn't lying. Â
"You don't get to half-ass this, Jake," Jungwon finally says after he thinks to himself. "She's not some random girl you're trying to impress, she isn't Jenn. This is Y/N. If you want to fix things, you have to be ready to own up to everything. No excuses, no backing out. She deserves that much."Â Â
Jake nods quickly, his eyes wide and hopeful at Jungwon's slight change in demeanor, âI will. I swear, I will.âÂ
"And don't think she's going to forgive you right away," Jungwon adds. "She's hurt. You have to give her time. This isn't about what you wantâit's about what she needs."Â Â
Jake swallows hard, nodding again, âI just want to talk to her. To explain. To tell her Iâm sorry andââ Â
His voice cracks, and he looks down, his hands trembling slightly. Jungwon lets out a sigh, his mixed feelings turning more into something closer to pity. Because as much as he wants to stay mad for your sake, he's known Jake long enough to know that he's a good guyâand that his heart is in the right place. Â
But even more than that, he knows you. And he knows how much Jake means to you, even if you won't admit it, especially not now more than ever. Â
"You're actually an idiot," Jungwon says after a few beats, his voice carrying a lighter tone now. "But for some godforsaken reason, knowing her, I think she might actually miss you."Â Â
Jake looks up from his hands, his eyes searching Jungwon's face for any flicker of doubt, "You really think so?"Â Â
Jungwon shrugs, standing up and moving towards his door, "I think you've got a lot of work to do if you want to earn her trust back. But...I think you still have a chance."Â Â
Jake doesn't say anything as he follows Jungwon to the door, but the look on his face says enoughâthere's a new slight look of hope. It's small, but he's clutching onto it like itâs his lifeline. Â
âYou know," Jungwon says when he reaches the doorway. "Y/Nâs not the type to let people in easily. She puts up wallsâbut with youâŠshe let them down. Youâre special to her, Jake, even if she doesnât say it. Donât throw that away. For her sake, and yours.âÂ
âI wonât,â Jake promises, his voice steady now. âThank you, Jungwon.âÂ
Jungwon nods at the older boy before giving him a faint smile, "And just so you know, I defended you yesterday. So don't prove me wrong or I'm actually going to deck you."Â Â
Jake lets out a weak laugh as he hangs outside Jungwon's door, "Noted. I promise I won't let her down again."Â Â
Jungwon doesnât respond, just closes the door with a soft click, and hopesâfor all their sakesâthat Jake means it. Â
Jake [5:12PM]: hi Y/N  Jake [5:12PM]: i know I'm the last person you want to hear from right now. and i donât blame you at all  Jake [5:13PM]: but i cant just stay silent and let this sit between us, and i value you too much to not respect you needing space and just show up at your door Jake [5:14PM]: even though itâs killing me to stay away Jake [5:14PM]: after you left the party last night, i went back inside. i told jenn that whatever we had in the past is exactly that, the past. and i swear to you, Y/N, thereâs nothing between us. there hasnât been for a long time. and itâs my fault for making it seem otherwise.  Jake [5:15PM]: and as for how i actedâŠi donât even know where to start. i fucked up extremely. nothing will excuse my actions and i donât expect you to forgive me. but i need to apologize properly, you deserve that much.  Jake [5:17PM]: please let me see you, Y/N. i donât deserve it, and i donât deserve you. but you mean everything to me, and i hate that i hurt you. and i promise, if you let me, iâll do everything to make it up to you. Â
You stare at the phone in your hand, the messages feeling like salt to an open wound. The words on the screen begin to blur together as tears prick your eyes, spilling over before you even realize it. You don't bother wiping them awayâthe sting in your chest too raw, too heavy. Each word feels like Jake is standing right there in front of you, his voice soft and broken, tangled with regret. Â
You tell yourself to stop reading. You've already gone through the same messages at least a hundred times in the past ten minutes, overanalyzing each syllable as if they hold the answers to all of your questions. Â
And yet, you can't stop. Â
You want to be angry. You are angry. Or, at least, you think. Because beneath the flame of your anger that's already threatening to die out? There's an ache you can't ignoreâa small, stubborn part of you that refuses to let go to the sincerity in his words, clinging onto the hope that he's telling you the truth. Â
You mean everything to me, and I hate that I hurt you. I promise, if you let me, I'll do everything to make it up to you. Â
The ache twists harder, curling into doubt. What if he means it? What if he's telling the truth? Â
But of course, the fear rises just as quickly. Because what if he's not? What if you let him back in, and it all falls apart again? What if you let yourself believe in him, giving him the second chance he's asking for, only to have your heart shattered worse than before? Â
And then, there's Jungwon's voice, soft but steady, cutting through the chaos brewing in your mind: "Even idiots get scared when they care about someone as much as he clearly cares about you." Â
Your breath catches. Â
Because that's the worst part. Knowing that maybeâjust maybeâJake really does care. Knowing that maybe he's telling the truthâand you're the one too afraid to take the risk, ready to build up the walls Jake's managed to get through. Â
Your phone screen suddenly dims, pulling you out of your thoughts and back into the moment. You blink rapidly, wiping at your face, your mind a mess of emotions you can't untangle or describe. Â
Fear. Hope. Doubt.Â
And something elseâsomething you're afraid to admit, but you know is unmistakably real. Â
And it's stronger than the fear churning in your chestâit's something that's pulling you forward. Â
Your heart pounds almost out of your rib cage as you let out a shaky breath, the weight on your shoulders pressing harder and harder with every second you hesitate. The ache doesn't let up, but neither does your hope. Â
So you stop thinking altogether, letting your heart take control instead. Â
You shut your eyes, as if bracing yourself for a crash, take a deep breath, unlock your phone, and let your fingers fly across the screen, each word feeling like a leap off a cliff. Â
You hit send. Â
Y/N [5:30PM]: hi jake Y/N [5:30PM]: you can come overÂ
The soft knock at your door startles you, even though you know itâs coming. Â
âY/N?âÂ
His voice. Jakeâs voice. Â
Your heart clenches painfully, a conflicting mix of longing and hurt washing over you all at once. It hasn't even been a full day since the party, but the weight of his absence has already hollowed you out, leaving a hole you can't ignore. You know he's the one who caused itâthat the cracks in your heart are his doingâbut at the same time, the stubborn part of you whispers that he's also the only one who can mend them. Â
You make your way to the door, your movements hesitant as you crack it open, peek out, and...there he is. Â
"Hi," Jake says softly. Â
He's a mess. A beautiful, saddened messâhis hair messy, like he's been running his hands through it all day, his eyes rimmed with the kind of exhaustion that isn't just physical. One hand is buried deep in his jacket, and in the otherâÂ
"Flowers?" You ask, raising a brow in surprise. Â
Jake's ears turn red. "Yeah. Uh, I didn't know if you had a favorite, so I gotâ"Â Â
You open the door wider, revealing the full bouquetâdaisies, tulips, roses, all wrapped together in crinkled tissue paper. Â
"âa little bit of everything," he finishes awkwardly, his voice trailing off, pausing for a second before holding them out to you with a sheepish smile. Â
Your lips twitch subconsciously, despite everything. Â
"Jake, you're literally allergic."Â Â
His mouth opens, then closes, the redness from his ears now spreading to his cheeks. Â
"Well, yeah, butâ," Jake mumbles, shifting on his feet. "ânot, like, deadly or anything dramatic like that."Â Â
He pauses, his voice dropping into something softer, more vulnerable, "I just wanted you to have them. That's all."Â Â
You feel your insides tighten, the sincerity in his voice getting to you. For a moment, all you can manage to do is stare at himâat the way his eyes are silently pleading, wide and unsure. Â
You hesitate for a second, then step back and open the door wider. Â
"Thank you," you say quietly, your fingers brushing against his as you take the bouquet, sending a flicker of warmth through you. "Come in."Â Â
Jake hesitates, his eyes searching yours like he's not sure if he's actually allowed to. When you turn away and walk towards your kitchen, he finally steps inside, kicking off his shoes quickly and hovering by the door like he doesn't know what to expect next. Â
You set the flowers down on the counter, adjusting them carefully before turning back to him. He's still standing there, stiff and uncertain, the distance between you feeling larger than ever before. Â
"So..." You say, crossing your arms tightly across yourself, shifting your weight as a way to ground yourselfâthough the lump in your throat makes it feel impossible. Â
Jake exhales shakily, his hands fidgeting by his sides and gaze darting to the floor before finally landing on you, "I came to apologize. Properly."Â Â
You blink at him, expression unreadable, "You already said sorry."Â Â
Your voice comes out sharper than intended, surprising even yourself, but the words leave before you can stop them. Jake flinches, just slightly, but he nods, knowing he deserved that.Â
"Not like I should have," he says, stepping closer, his voice low and careful, like he's afraid you'll run out of your own apartment. "I know I messed up. I hurt you, and I hate that I did. I hate that I made you feel like you weren't enough or that someone else could ever compare to you, Y/N."Â Â
Your arms tighten around yourself as if the words might knock the breath out of you as look away, unsure if you can meet the rawness in his eyes. Â
"Last night," Jake continues, his eyes filling with guilt, "I didn't handle last night right. And not just how I handled Jenn, but I let my own insecurities and stupid fears of being perfect for you get in the way. I let it happen and mess everything up. I let you think that you didn't matter to me, and I will never forgive myself, Y/N."Â Â
His words hang in the air, heavy yet sincere, and for a moment, all you can do is stare at him as you process his words slowly. Â
"And I don't expect you to forgive me either, Y/N," Jake's voice wavers before he continues, "but I need you to know that I'm so, so sorry. No excuses. For all of itâfor making you feel like anything less than everything, for making you feel like you weren't my first choice. Because you are. You're my only, Y/N."Â
His words hit you with a force that crashes over the walls you tried so desperately to build. They're overwhelming yet tender, like rediscovering a piece of yourself you hadn't even realized you lost. And you want to let them comfort you, you do. But the pain from last night lingers deep down, reminding you of why you built those walls in the first place. Â
For a moment, the silence stretches on longer than you intend, the weight of his words settling in the air between you. Jake doesn't look away thoughâhis gaze unwavering, vulnerable, and raw. Â
As though he's laid himself bare before you, giving you the power to either accept or shatter him completely. Â
When you finally find your voice, it trembles despite your best efforts, "Jake...I don't know if I can just forget what happened."Â Â
"I'm not asking you to forget," he says quickly, taking another step closer until there's only a few feet left between you. "I just want the chance to fix us. I can't lose you like this, Y/N."Â Â
Your breath catches at the proximity, his presence pulling you in like gravity. The pain from last night tries to claw its way back into your heartâsharp and bitterâbut his warmth reminds you of something else that refuses to be ignored. Â
That flicker of hope that's demanding your attention, screaming at you to just let him inânot just for his sake, but for you.Â
You take a deep breath, finally meeting his gaze. "Jake, I don't need you to...to be this perfect person. I don't need you to prove anything to me."Â Â
You pause, pushing past the lump in your throat, "Because since the beginning, I always believed you. And...I think I still do. Even after last night, I still believe you, Jake. No matter how hard I try to."Â Â
Jake lets out a breath he thinks he's been holding in for hours, "Really?"Â Â
"Yeah," you nod slowly, as if reassuring yourself as much as him. "But I don't need any of your promises or proof or any of that. I just...I just need you as you." Â
His eyes soften at you as he nods so quickly it's almost desperate.  Â
"And I need you to be honest with me, Jake," you continue before he can speak. "If we do this, I need to know I can trust you. Because I don't know if I can do this...this waiting game anymore."Â Â
"You can," he says immediately, closing the distance between you two, making your breath hitch. You can see the way his hands are trembling, the slight quiver in his lips. "You can trust me. No more hesitation. I'm all in, Y/N. This is it for me, you're it."Â Â Â
You search his face for any sign of doubt, any speck of hesitation. But all you find is his sincerityâso hopeful and so realâthe kind that makes you want to let him in fully and let your walls crumble all over again. Â
So you do. Â
"Okay," you say softly, almost as if you're testing the word. Â
Jake's eyes widen, the relief and hope flooding his features. Slowly, as if asking for permission, he reaches out, his fingers brushing against yours tentatively. Â
"Okay?" He whispers, his voice barely audible to you as his eyes flicker between your hands and your face. Â
You nod, your own hand turning over so your fingers curl around his in an instinctive gesture that feels so natural it makes you want to scream. The warmth of his touch feels like the first real comfort you've felt in forever, and it's enough to make your resolve slip. Â
"But," you add softly, your eyes not leaving the way his hand wraps around yours so perfectly, "this doesn't mean everything's fine. We need to talk. We need to figure out where we stand, and where we go from there."Â Â
Jake nods again, his grip on your hand tightening slightly, "We will. Whatever it takes, Y/N, I'll do it. I need you to know how much you mean to me and I'll never stop trying to show you that."Â Â
You let out a shaky breath as you take in his words, finally looking up from your intertwined hands to meet his eyes, your own slowly filling with the tears you've been holding back.Â
"You really hurt me, Jake," you say quietly, your voice breaking from the sheer weight of your vulnerability being laid bare. Â
Jake's face crumbles instantly, guilt etched into every line of his expression. Without hesitation, his free hand comes up to gently cup your cheek, his thumb light brushing away the tears that fall, as if he's afraid you might pull away. Â
Your eyes flutter closed at the warmth of his hand, and despite the emotions raging inside you, you let yourself lean into him. It feels both reckless, yet inevitable, like free-falling and trustingâknowingâhe'll catch you. Â
"I know," he whispers, his voice thick with emotion he can't swallow down. "And I'll spend as long as it takes to deserve you, Y/N. I'll never make you feel like that again."Â Â
You nod weakly, and before you can think too much, he wraps his arms around you, pulling you into the safety of his chest, his chin moving to rest on top of your head as his warmth envelops you completely. Â
And for the first time in a long time, you let yourself break, burying your face into his chest as the tears flow freely, the weight of everything finally breaking free as you let yourself melt into his tight embrace. Â
It's not perfect. It's not a fix-all. Â
But as Jake holds you close, whispering quiet reassurances into your hair, you know it's a start. Â
And a start is all you need. Â
.ă»ă.ă»ăâă».ă»â«ă»ăă»ă..ă»ă.ă»ăâă».ă»
epilogue:
âHi, pretty.â Â
âHi, Jake.â
On the other end of the call, Jake lets out a playful scoff. Even with the slight lag, you can see his lips twitch into that familiar poutâthe one that still gives you butterflies, no matter how many times you've see it now, even a year later.
âAfter all weâve been through, you still wonât give me a cute pet name?âÂ
You roll your eyes, biting back a grin, âWhat do you want me to say? Hi, my handsome, perfect, kindest, funniest, boyfriend in the whole wide world?â Â
Jake leans closer to the camera, his expression completely serious as if you should already know his answer, "...Yes."Â
Giggles burst out of you, shaking your head at his antics. âYouâre too cute to be doing all that, Jake. Pick a struggle.âÂ
He clutches his chest dramatically, âYou know, what? Youâre my struggleâI fly across time zones, run on three hours of sleep, and you still wonât give me a crumb of your affection?âÂ
âYouâre exhausting.âÂ
âAnd yetâŠ,â Jake trails off with a teasing smirk, his voice dropping into that playful, yet low lilt that still makes your stomach flip to this day. "Here you are, calling me at 1AM in the morning.â Â
Your cheeks flush as you glance away from the screen, trying to ignore the way his teasing gaze makes you feel, "Donât' get confused, it's not like I wanted to or anything. I just figured someone should remind you to go to bed or else you'll look like a zombie tomorrow at the fanmeet."Â Â
Jake laughs softly, the sound grounding you in a certain way only he ever can. "You're so thoughtful, babe. My number-one hater and number-one fan, all at once. I'm so lucky."Â Â
You send him an air kiss, the teasing grin on your face mirrored by the fond one tugging at his lips. He looks at you like he did in that first-ever call way back thenâlike you're his whole world, and he can't believe you're real. Â
"How's the jet lag this time?" You ask, steering the conversation to safer ground. Â
"It's not so bad," he shrugs, despite the clear exhaustion in his voice. "At least this trip is only for a few days. Then I can come back to the comfort of our bed."Â Â
You raise an eyebrow, "My bed."Â Â
Jake's eyes narrow, "Our bed. Just admit itâyou miss me."Â Â
You pause. "Maybe. Just a little."Â Â
His grin widens, and for a moment, neither of you say anything, the conversation lulling into an easy silenceâthe kind of warmth that only comes with knowing someone so well. Â
Finally, you shift under your blanket, getting comfortable as Jake watches you through this screen, his gaze tender, as though memorizing the curve of your smile, the way you tuck your hair behind your ear. Â
"You should sleep," you murmur, holding your phone closer to your face. The glow of your phone reflecting off your soft features sends palpations to Jake's chest so loud he almost doesn't hear your words.Â
"Mm, I really should," Jake sighs, though he doesn't move an inch. "I'll talk to you soon, yeah?"Â
"Mmhm," you hum, your eyes closing at the softness of his voice. Â
âSleep tight. I love you,â his says, voice soft and deliberate, making sure you feel every word.Â
âGoodnight, Jakey,â you tease, letting the smirk creep into your voice, peeking an eye open just to catch his reaction.Â
Jake groans dramatically, running a hand down his face, âY/NâŠnot this again.â Â
You giggle, the fondness within you growing tenfold as you take in his faceâthe slight pout of his lips, his messy hair, his eyes shining with unwavering adoration for you.Â
âI said I love youuu,â he whines, dragging out the last word, his lips tugging into the tiniest of smiles, his entire universe reflecting from his eyes. Â
Finally, you give in, smiling sweetly. Â
âI love you, too, Jake. You already know.â Â
And youâve never meant anything more. Â
.ă»ă.ă»ăâă».ă»â«ă»ăă»ă..ă»ă.ă»ăâă».ă»
Songs that Remind me of Y/N:
From the first call to foreverâyou've always been my favorite melody. Â Yours, Jake <3
"As I Am" â Justin Bieber (ft. Khalid)Â Â
"Daylight"Â â Taylor SwiftÂ
"DIE 4 YOU" - DeanÂ
"Psycho, Pt. 2"Â â RussÂ
"Heaven"Â â BazziÂ
"Every Kind of Way"Â â H.E.R.Â
"Off My Face"Â â Justin BieberÂ
"Before You"Â â Benson BooneÂ
"Sunflower"Â â Post Malone & Swae LeeÂ
"Pink + White"Â â Frank Ocean
"No Doubt" â Enhypen <3Â
.ă»ă.ă»ăâă».ă»â«ă»ăă»ă..ă»ă.ă»ăâă».ă»
update! if you enjoyed this and want more of no doubt!jake & y/n, check out my sequel series linked here for drabbles of their relationship <3
.ă»ă.ă»ăâă».ă»â«ă»ăă»ă..ă»ă.ă»ăâă».ă»
the end! if you made it all the way, this is for you:
âž(ïœĄË á” Ë )âžâĄâĄâĄâĄâĄâĄ
p.s. i wanted to leave the ending kinda up to interpretationâhence the time skip to a year later..but lowkey what if i wrote short drabbles/scenes of things jake does to gain Y/N's trust again, from small to big gestures etc etc..lmk if that's something anyone would wanna see !! (update â linked above now!)
<3, addie
m.list here!
tag list (love you all <3):
(i hope it let me tag everyone!)
@thesassy-mia @ikeulove @renaishun @xylatox @puma-riki @blackberryrains @dreamiestay @junislqve @lamin143 @dreamy-carat @etherealhan @vvenusoncasual @belovedsthings @somuchdard @sumzysworld @mirouie @almondtofu006 @fancypeacepersona @vivimura @hollxe1 @missthang600 @sugarikiz @sanasour @enhamonsterghoul @etherealriki
#enhypen x reader#enhypen angst#enhypen jake#enhypen#jake sim#enhypen fics#enhypen jake sim#enhypen imagines#enhypen fluff#enhypen scenarios#enha x reader#enha imagines#enha fluff#enha scenarios#jake sim x reader#jake sim imagines#jake sim fluff#sim jake x reader#sim jake imagines#sim jake fluff#jake#sim jaeyun fluff#sim jaeyun imagines#sim jaeyun x reader#sim jaeyun#enha#jake enhypen#engene#heeseung enhypen#ficrecs
4K notes
·
View notes
Text
it was always you.

for as long as you remember, youâve always had the fattest crush on your childhood friend, jeon jungkook. it never blossomed into something more though, because thatâs what happens when life naturally takes it courseâyou grow up, you move on, and you pretend that those feelings never existed in order to maintain the good friendship that remained between the two of you over the years.
so when he visits you after work one day, asking you to marry him, you do everything you can to refuse, because the reason heâs asking you isnât due to the fact that he finally realized that he loved you after all this time, but because he thinks heâs doing you a big favor.
or at least, thatâs what you think.
pairing: jungkook x reader
word count: 13.2k
rating: 18+
content: fluff, semi-angst, childhood friends to lovers au, pining au | ft. naval aviator!jungkook + brotherâs best friend!jungkook; professor!reader + editor!reader | inspired by purple hearts
warning/s: swearing, potentially wrong medical & military information (iâm sorry but i tried to do as much research i can đ), mentions of having type 1 diabetes, making out, heavy petting, implied sexual content: oral (f. receiving), fingering, penetrative sex, unprotected sex (this is only fiction!)
MINI PLAYLIST: â« die with a smile â lady gaga, bruno mars â« juno â sabrina carpenter â« selfish â *nsync â« nandito na ako â benj pangilinan, angela ken
opening note. omg this is my first full length fic in two damn years i think??? certainly took a long time before i had the motivation to write again but i hope y'all like this! to my og readers who still keep up with my shenanigans, this one's for you đ„čđ
âAny questions?â
A boy wearing half-rimmed glasses raises his hand and you gesture for him to speak. âCan we get an extension on the Save the Cat project due tomorrow?â
You sigh, just as several of your students begin agreeing with him and muttering reasons of their own why the extension should be approved. Itâs the week before finals, and youâre aware that the class must be packed with assignments and projects for several of their classes because of it, hence the rather last minute request. They look tired and pleading, a complete reflection of how you were when you were the one in their position nearly a decade ago, begging for an extension from a professor who you thought was kind enough to be swayed with the proposition.
You scan the crowd. âHow many of you are at least 70% with it, hm?â
More than half of the class raises their hands.
âOkay, thatâs honestly unexpected,â you say, pleased to know that they arenât slacking on your subject. âDoes Monday sound good? Thatâs three more days, to be fair. I donât want to extend it further because I have to read everyoneâs work and you guys know I donât like rushing it before turning in your final grade.â
A chorus of relief and thanks echoed in the room, all of your students either dramatically sinking in their chair or erupting in an animated conversation with their seatmate or making crying faces to portray how grateful they are.
âThank you so much, Ms. ____!â
âI love you, Ms. ____!â
âMs. ____, I will offer my first child to you,â one theatrically adds and you smile a bit, rolling your eyes at students like this one who is now opting to flatter you way too much for your act of kindness.
âAlright, alright. Just get it done and Iâm expecting quality work, okay? Class dismissed.â
The whole class begins to gather their things at the cue and you donât stay there a minute longer after your announcement, exiting the lecture hall to head to the faculty room where youâre certain half of the teaching staff have gone home already. Itâs already 8:47 p.m., and all you want to do is head home to get the rest you deserve after an eventful day.
There was a time that having a schedule from 6 p.m. to 9 p.m. wasnât the norm for you. You used to value work life balance so muchâit was even a nonnegotiable you used to say in interviews, saying that if you didnât get enough rest within the week, then the job most likely wasnât for you. But things have been very different for the past months; you have definitely grown out of that mindset due to the fact that youâre simply in need of another source of income to pay for your monthly rent, utility bills, and now your medication. Youâre in a stage of your life wherein you consider working part time as a professor was a blessing rather than a big nuisance.
Making a right turn to where the hallway to the faculty room is, youâre too busy rearranging the papers inside the folder youâre holding to notice a man sitting on the bench placed just beside the entrance. He notices you the second you appear in his line of vision though; he straightens his posture and proceeds on standing up immediately upon seeing you closer, calling your name softly when you failed to look at his direction, too preoccupied with the thought of finally coming home that youâre oblivious that the man trying to catch your attention is Jeon Jungkook.
â____,â he calls again and this time you notice him, your eyes widening instantly.
âHoly shiââ You stop yourself from finishing that sentence. âJungkook?â
He grins. âHey, lamb chop.â
âWhat the hell are you doing here?â
âIs that how you greet an old friend?â
âOh, fuck off.â
He laughs, following suit to you whoâs already giggling just by his presence alone, outstretching his arms then. âYou gonna hug me or what?â
You beam and step forward to embrace him. He returns it without hesitation, muscular arms circling around you and squeezing tightly that it lifts you up from the ground for a quick second. The faint smell of fabric conditioner on his clothes enters your nostrils and you feel like a teenager again, warmth rushing to your face while your heart hammers loudly in your chest. Regardless of how old the both of you are, you think your hopeless crush on the guy will forever live on and constantly transform you into a middle school girl whenever opportunities like these to have him near arise. Youâre just happy youâve trained yourself to be better at hiding it now compared to when you were younger.
âArenât you supposed to be in base or wherever it is that youâre designated?â you ask, the first to let go from the hug.
âActually, I returned from deployment three days ago. Iâm on leave for two weeks.â
âWow. Two weeks, huh?â
âYep. Itâs the longest break Iâve gotten in a while.â
âThatâs good. Everybody needs a break from time to time.â
âSays the girl has a day job and a night job.â He points out with a smirk; your heart does a little leap at how handsome he looks doing that. âWhen the hell did you get into teaching, by the way? I never pegged you to be the kind who can tolerate it. You hate kids.â
âYouâll find yourself tolerating lots of things in this economy.â You snort. âAnd my students arenât kids. Theyâre in college.â
âYeah, which you graduated from six years ago. Still technically kids.â
âAre you seriously jabbing at my age when youâre two years older than I am?â
He rolls his eyes at that one, an indication that you won the argument. âAnyway,â he starts again and you grin, âI didnât come here to compare how old we areââ
âYou didnât?â
He sends you a look. Your grin gets even wider.
âIâm here because I was hoping to treat you to dinner.â
âDinner?â you repeat, not masking the surprise from your voice.
Letâs get the facts straight before we proceed to this conversation.
It isnât a lie when you say that you and Jungkook are great friends. You have been since you were 7 and your family just moved into the house next to theirs. He was a natural playmate, a companion when you couldnât tolerate the antics of your older brother, the boy who looked out for you aside from said older brother, and the person youâve shared significant history with throughout your youth that you can never seem to forget nor disregard.
Itâs just that you never deemed that you were great enough friends for him to go out of his way and visit you at your workplace, offering to treat you for dinner. Gestures like that were reserved for your older brother, Seowon, whoâs the same age as he is and who youâre sure is considered as his best friend. Compared to them, yours and Jungkookâs dynamic shifted slightly after graduating from college. What once was a really close friendship turned into a casual one, with mostly just teasing, light talks, and the occasional welfare checks at times you hear certain news from the other thatâs worth speaking directly about.
At the mention of that, realization dawns on you on why he must be here.
âJungkookâŠâ Youâre trying not to sound mad but you canât hide the exasperation from your voice. âThatâs not the real reason youâre here.â
âOf course, it is. Why else would I be here?â
âHe told you, didnât he?â you ask, not willing to drag this out. âYouâre just going to give me another lecture that I definitely donât need.â
Jungkook frowns, like heâs dismayed that you caught on pretty swiftly.
âIâm right, arenât I?â You pressed.
âHe meant well, ____.â
You scowl. To remark that Seowon is unnecessarily nosy and coddling would be an understatement. That man hasnât left you alone the second he was aware of your condition. Usually, whenever he gets into his âbig brother tendenciesâ, his girlfriend Winnie steps in and helps you lay him off your back. However, itâs different this time; no matter how much you reinstill your independence and insist that youâre fine, itâs like youâre talking to a wall.
âWhat exactly did you hear from him?â you query.
He seems hesitant in answering that. âThat you got diagnosed with type 1 diabetes.â
You wince.
âLook,â he steps forward towards you, âI wasnât going to bring it up unless you did, okay? Iâm just here because Iâm genuinely worried about you and I want to know how youâre doing.â
âIâm fine.â You murmur. âYou donât need to worry.â
âWorry doesnât vanish magically just because someone says so.â
âWell, it shouldâbecause Iâm fine.â
âYou sure? I heard that youâre struggling to buy insulin among other things youâre having a hard time paying.â
âFuck. Seowon told you that too? Thatâs private.â
âMy parents know. He just filled me in because he wants you to have as much support as you can get.â
âI donât need that. Iâm an adult. Iâve lived by myself for years. I can fend for myself just fine.â
âIt doesnât look like it from what Iâve been hearing.â
âAll youâre hearing is a warped and exaggerated version of the story told by Seowon who wonât listen to a word I say.â You huff. âIâm fine and Iâve been doing everything I can, alright? Iâm taking care of myself. Iâm going to the doctor whenever I need to. Iâm making ends meet, buying treatment for this goddamn disease and regulating my sugar levels all the fucking time. Why do you think Iâve been working two jobs for the past year? Itâs because Iâm doing everything I can to stay alive.â
Jungkook doesnât reply, he only remains gazing at you.
âIf youâre here to offer me money or whatever because of what he said,â you add, already embarrassed that you canât even look at him anymore, âthen I donât want it.â
âThatâs not what Iâm here for,â he says.
âThen are you really just here to treat me to dinner?â you question sarcastically.
He laughs and you dare return your eyes at him, catching him peering at you with a fond expression. âYes. Itâs my way of doing a welfare check.â
âWelfare check.â You echo with squinted eyes. âWell, in that case, here I amâalive and healthy.â
âI can see that, and Iâm glad.â He smiles. âBut I need more than just seeing you. I need a conversation and an apology.â
âAn apology?â
âFor being the last person to know about your condition.â
âAnd weâre still talking about that apparently.â You mutter under your breath. âSorry. I didnât think that you wanted to know.â
âOf course, I would have wanted to know. Itâs you weâre talking about here.â
Something about how he said you causes your lips to twitch as you fight off a smile. This isnât a good time to dive into your romantic feelings for your childhood crush, but when heâs letting go of lines like that which are sure to have your heart soaring out of your chest, itâs hard to keep on a cool and unfazed facade. You just convince yourself that he sees you as a little sister and thatâs why heâs so worried; you should already be past your âdeluluâ phase at this age to be affected by such statements.
âI didnât want to add to your worries,â you reason. âYou already have your life to think about. Add to the fact that youâre a naval aviatorâso you literally have your own life first to think about.â
âI can make space for you.â
Is he flirting? Is this a normal thing to say between friends?
You blink. âOkay, uh, thatâs⊠thatâs completely up to you, I guess.â
âI just like knowing those things first hand. It makes me worry less.â
âGot it. Next time I learn Iâm dying, Iâll tell you.â
â____,â he says your name in warning, and you know heâs serious.
âSorry.â You heat up. âI couldnât resist.â
âDonât be a pain in the ass.â
âI promise thatâll be the last time I make a dark joke, Lieutenant.â
Jungkookâs nostrils flare. You prevent yourself from grinning like a fool again in success of getting on his nerves.
âAre you done here? Because Iâm hungry and would really like to get going now.â He changes the subject and gestures to the faculty.
âYeah. Iâll just get my things and then I can get out of here.â
âGreat. Youâre letting me take you to dinner, right?âÂ
âDo I have a choice?â
âNo.â
âFine.â You deadpan.
This time, heâs the one whoâs beaming at you. âIâll wait for you here and we can go.â
âOkay.â
****
When Jungkook discovered that you had type 1 diabetes through a phone call with Seowon, he spent the rest of the night staring at the ceiling, ignoring the snores of his squadmates and overthinking whatâs supposed to happen to you now that you had an autoimmune disease which he was told didnât have a cure. He was assured that you were okay despite it, that there was medication to treat it, and that you had access to them and have been very careful with your lifestyle due to the diagnosis ever since.
He still couldnât be put to ease though. As ridiculous as it may sound, he had this overwhelming realization that life truly was short, that you had to make certain decisions all the time because you need to adjust to what the universe is only willing to give you. It was funny coming from a person who risked his life for a living. He thinks that perhaps he never understood the philosophy of the quote âtime is goldâ until he had a loved one on the same trajectory, always one step closer to possible death.
And so that same night, he decided to file a leave for two weeks, effective immediately after his deployment.Â
He wasnât sure what his game plan was exactly in filing that two-week leave. Was he supposed to barge in your life and force you to let him take care of you? Was he supposed to demand why you ended up having diabetes? Was he supposed to act as a big brother like your actual big brother because he was that worried about you? But if Jungkook was going to be truthful, he already had an idea on what he wanted to do in the back of his headâhe just didnât want to execute it because it was absolutely insane.
Until he heard Seowon suggest it himself when they met up at a bar to share a drink together.
âShe would never say yes,â Jungkook said, beyond doubt that you wonât be persuaded that easily with a plan like that.
Seowon made a face. âI know. That girl is so hyper independentâsheâd rather die than accept help.â He scoffed. âShe needs it though. Itâll help with her medication and she wonât have to pay rent for that shit apartment sheâs living in. Plus, she'll actually get the chance to take care of her body if sheâs not juggling two jobs to have sufficient income.â
âYouâre right.â Jungkook shrugged.
âYouâll do it then?â
He took a sip of his beer. âYeah. Iâd do anything for ____, you know that.â
âEven as crazy as marrying her?â
âSure.â
Seowon stared at him, narrowing his eyes and morphing his expression into a teasing one. âAre you sure youâre not just considering this because itâs a perfect excuse to marry my sister? I know you like her.â
âI donât like her.âÂ
âYouâre in love with her.â
âI donâtââ Jungkook began to deny but Seowon was staring him down. âFuck you, man. Donât make me some kind of pervert whoâs trying to lock her into marriage because he likes her. Youâre the one who brought the idea up.â
Seowon laughed out loud. âI know, I just canât believe youâd agree. Itâll benefit ____, thatâs for sureâyou, on the other hand? Itâs career suicide.â
He shrugged. âIâm okay with the thought that sheâll be okay.â
âBecause you love her, man.â Seowon pushed. âWhy on earth would you consider this if you werenât? Itâs a fraudulent marriage. Youâll be thrown in the brig and be dishonorably discharged if you get caught.â
âWe donât even know if sheâll agree to this whole thing. You said it yourself, she would never say yes.â
âYeah, unless maybe youâre the one who tries to persuade her.â
âMe?â
âYes.â
âDo you want me to buy her a ring and kneel down before her or something?â
âThat can work.â
âWhat?â Jungkook laughed.
Seowon raised an eyebrow. âDonât tell me you donât know how sheâs been crushing on you since we were kids.â
He barked out a laugh again. That he knew; it was impossible not to when a lot of friends and cousins kept on teasing you before, especially at instances Jungkook was in the very same vicinity. âWeâre not kids anymore and I barely see her though.â
âStill, it ought to count to something. It raises the chances of her agreeing.â
âYouâre really cool with me marrying your sister, Won?â Jungkook asked.
Seowon placed down the beer bottle heâs consuming on the counter. âYeah. Youâre a good guy. Youâre not perfect, but I know you enough to know that you wonât do anything that will purposely hurt her. Besides, if this sham marriage ends up to be a real relationship and then for some reason, you fuck up and decide to break her heartâIâll easily know what to do, where to find you, and then Iâll do everything I can to fuck you up.â
Jungkook pressed his lips together to stifle a chuckle.
âNoted.â
****
Itâs always been a big wonder to you how no matter how long itâs been since you saw each other, it still feels like no time has passed between you and Jungkook. You think thatâs why you can never get over him; he always had this comforting and familiar aura that you appreciateâsomething that you sought for in every other person that you liked. Maybe it was impractical, maybe it was the reason you can never hold a relationship for more than two years, but unless you gain the courage to confront your feelings and tell Jungkook about it, then you constantly dispel any doubts you might have whether this was good for you or not.
You donât want to lose him. Admitting that you harbored romantic feelings for him would just make it awkward for everyone: your brother, your family, and then his family. You donât think you can ever trade his smile, the sound of his laughter, and all the good things about him for anything in the world.Â
âAre you dating anyone?â he asks.
You choke on your drink, having just poured yourself and Jungkook a glass of water after the server arrived with the pitcher. Youâre in a Japanese restaurant near the university, aware that the cuisine was a favorite for the both of you hence why itâs what you recommended when he asked where you wanted to dine. The place is packed with people from the workforce and students; youâre thankful that you donât see any of your students within the mix.
âWeâre getting straight to it, huh?â you say.
Jungkook smirks. âIâm just making sure Iâm not upsetting a boyfriend by meeting you tonight.â
âDonât worry, youâre not upsetting anyone.â
He nods in understanding. You donât want to add more meaning to his actions for the evening but he seems glad about the information.
âHow about you?â you ask back. âAre you dating anyone?â
The ends of his mouth lift a bit upwards. âNope.â
âWhy? You donât have the time for it?â
âPrecisely.â
âIt must be really hard dating when youâre in the Navy then.â
âKinda. Weâre away a lot and stationed in different places most of the time. It can get really dangerous for us too and people donât like the stress that comes with that.â
 You bob. âDoes it get lonely?â
âSometimes, but when youâre on duty, you donât get to think about those things.â He chuckles. âBesides, I donât know if this sounds fucked up or notâbut it can get exciting. Flying a plane can be fun, you know. Not to mention that it helps when youâre surrounded by good men in your squadron.â
âYouâve always been an adrenaline junkie.â
âAnd youâve always been a scaredy-cat.â
You scoff at the declaration. âNo, Iâm not.â
âRemember when Seowon and I forced you to ride that ship in the amusement park that sways left to right and as it goes on it falls from a higher standpoint?â
âI donât know what youâre talking about.â
But you do, and Jungkook knows you do, itâs evident by how your expression is trying to feign innocence. That memory is your villain origin story; the whole pretext of why you refuse to ever visit the amusement park or ride an exhilarating ride again. Yet you canât help but recall that itâs one of the rare instances wherein you got to hold Jungkookâs hand when you two were younger, as his hand was the one you were clinging for dear life when it happened while the other was too busy slapping Seowon in irritation.
He snickers, appearing like heâs replaying the scene in his head. âWe should do that again with Seowon during my break.â
âHell no.â
âI thought you werenât a scaredy-cat?â He challenges.
âIâm not.â You give him a kittenish glare. âBut I am busy. I have to send the final manuscript of this book Iâm editing to the chief editor next week and itâs about to be finals week for my students as well.â
He fakes a shiver. âI donât know how you can do two jobs like that, ____. Truly.â
âYou work as a naval aviator so Iâd say weâre pretty even.â
The waiter arrives with your orders not long after, and you and Jungkook carry on with your conversation, jumping from topic to topic without difficulty. Youâre not certain when was the last time you saw each other like this to have so much to talk aboutâwas it last Christmas? Or was it more recent or longer than that? Nevertheless, it feels good and you find yourself blushing multiple times throughout the night, whether itâs because of how his words can have two meanings or how his eyes are staring at you so intensely whenever youâre the one whoâs talking.
You like the undivided attention, the back and forth thatâs occurring as you discourse, the subtle touches one of you does when something funny arises, how your knees are touching underneath the table. You wonder whatâs so different with this encounter that the energy feels so bizarre in a good way? As far as youâre concerned, youâre positive that youâre acting like you always have in his presenceâlively, smiley, sarcasticâand aside from the little touches of flirting here and there, Jungkookâs acting like he always has too.
When dinner was done, Jungkook offered to drive you home. You obliged, no longer in the mood to annoy him for you were tired to make the effort. Before stepping outside the restaurant however, you excused yourself to the restroom first, checking your blood sugar with the glucose meter you brought along wherever you went. Itâs a hassle but itâs necessary, largely because youâre still in the middle of saving up for the insulin pump that would help you regulate your sugar levels easier.
After administering yourself with the insulin injection you have, you spend a few more seconds inside the enclosed room. You should be past the point of feeling sorry for yourself, but itâs times like this wherein youâre with a loved one that the dejection hits and you wish that youâre in a better predicament than you are right now. Youâre close to being broke, youâre overworked, youâre somehow fatigued all the fucking timeâthose factors arenât soothing your worries at all. Itâs a miracle how you manage to keep an optimistic mind amidst everything.
âReady to go?â Jungkook smiles at you once youâre back at the table and you nod, clutching your bag tighter against your body and following him to his car.
He drives you to your place, turning the radio on, and letting it play while the both of you sit in silence. Youâre both tired and you almost even sleep during the ride. Itâs only when Jungkook gently shakes you awake that you realize that youâve arrived in front of your apartment building.
âIâll walk you up,â he insists as youâre unbuckling the seatbelt.Â
âThatâs no need, Kook.â
âOf course, it is,â he says. âIâll walk you up. Thatâs nonnegotiable.â
So, you allow him.
It takes five minutes tops to reach the door leading to your apartment. As you rummage through your bag to grab your keys, Jungkook patiently stands there, occasionally glancing around the hallway and even smiling when the old lady that resided in the same floor got out of her room to throw out the trash. He receives a smile in return which you notice and grin fondly at.
âWell, this is me.â You turn to him, done unlocking your door. âIâd invite you inside but you should probably get going. Itâs quite a long drive back home.â
âYeah.â He breathes out a chuckle. âHey, tonight was fun. It made me realize how I missed you.â
Your brain temporarily malfunctions; you force yourself to recover quickly. âMe too. I had fun tonight. Maybe we should do this again whenever youâre on a break.â
âAgreed.â
You flash him a smile. âYou can go now. Goodnight.â
Jungkook nods, however doesnât move a muscle. Heâs looking at you, like really looking at you, his eyes moving from one feature to another, as if heâs memorizing your face or having a hard time arranging the words he wants to say. You guess itâs the latter, familiar with a tongue-tied Jungkook that it takes you a few good seconds before youâre demanding why heâs impersonating a mannequin.
âThereâs something I want to say,â thatâs what he utters and you almost snort due to your assumption being right.
âOkayâŠâ The smile is still on your lips. âWhat is it?â
âPromise me you wonât get mad first.â
âWell, if youâre making me promise that then itâs probably worth being mad about.â
âItâs not as bad as you think.â
âThatâs not convincing at all.â
âItâs justâŠâ He begins and trails, biting his lower lip, âitâs⊠itâs why I went here. Why I went here to see and meet you, I mean.â
You unconsciously recoil at the revelation. Itâs certainly a rookie mistake to believe that there was no ulterior motive in Jungkook meeting you today. You just didnât reckon youâd actually be truly disappointed at thatâat the idea that he just didnât randomly decide to visit and be with you earlier until now.
You draw a long breath. âWell, I knew you werenât just feeling generous and wanted to treat me to dinner out of nowhere.â
Thereâs a pause and then he resumes. âJustâbefore I say it, you have to hear me out, okay? You have to let me explain before you berate me.â
âI canât promise that either.â
âYou have to.â
âWhy do I have to?â
âBecause what Iâm about to say is for your own sake. You know I always have your best interest at heart, donât you?â
You wrinkle your forehead in further confusion. âCan you just get on with it? The vagueness is making me more annoyed.â
âI just donât want you to misunderstand.â
âMisunderstand what?â
âWhat Iâand Seowonâgenuinely think is the best option.â
âOh, and Seowon is in on this too?â You bellow. âHave you and Seowon just been conspiring behind my back the whole time?â
âCalm down.â Jungkook puts his hands on your shoulders, a chuckle inevitably escaping him. âIâm sorry for dragging it out. You should know Iâm high key afraid of you, thatâs why.â
âYou should be.â You grumble.
Another chuckle, but heâs back to appearing anxious. You want to shout that this isnât healthy, that youâre close to giving him a real reason to be afraid of youâyet once he blurts the confession out, youâre speechless, gawking at him and staggering backwards in complete shock. Perhaps you would have bolted as far away from him as possible if not for his solid grasp.
âWhat?â You hiss.
He swallows hard.
âI want you to marry me, ____.â
You donât bolt away running. You shake off his hold on you though, and before he gets another word in, youâre hastily rushing inside your apartment and slamming the door to his face.
****
Jungkook was your first kiss.
It happened in a game of truth and dare. You were at a party of a mutual friend and when the bottle miserably pointed in Jungkookâs direction, the person who was tasked to think of his dare when it was his pick said that he dared him to do 7 minutes in heaven with you.Â
He profusely refused at first, especially since Seowon was in the same party, but everybody began booing and next thing you know, Jungkook was agreeing as long as it was fine with you. When you nodded to make your consent apparent, your friends were quick to shove you both in the closet, some of them pulling Seowon back who was complaining how it wasnât right to bully you into doing 7 minutes in heaven with Jungkook. They calmed him down once they bullied him into agreeing too.
âWe donât have to do anything,â Jungkook told you in the darkness, his breath fawning over your face. âYou donât have to feel pressured. Itâs just a stupid game.â
You blushed.
Secretly, you were hoping that heâd kiss you or touch you. Who didnât want to do anything with their crush at the age of 15? A lot can happen in 7 minutes. You were aware that sometimes people made out, went as far as third base, and although you didnât want to go that far with Jungkook, you wanted something to happen while you were stuck in this small closet with him. There werenât a lot of instances that put both of you in this kind of situation; you wished that you were brave enough to ask him to kiss you or do the first move yourself.
5 minutes in, Jungkook turned towards you.
âIs it true that Taehyung kissed you last week?â
You whipped your head so fast that you might have given yourself whiplash. âThatâsâthatâs not true. Where did you hear that?â
âDuring homeroom. Some girls were talking about it.â
Your cheeks burned. âOh.â
âSo, itâs not true?â
âNo.â You shook your head. âI havenât even had my first kiss yet.â You laughed weakly.
It was his turn to seem stunned. âYou havenât had your first kiss yet?â
You shook your head again, then realized he might not see you doing so. âNot yet.â
âWant me to change that?â he asked, grinning.
He said that with a boyish grin and teasing tone, but you sucked at social cues (plus, you really couldnât see shit that much) that you started nodding.
âOkay,â you told him.
âHuh?â
âYou can kiss me.â
âOh, oh, shitâI didnâtââ He was blabbering, about to take back what he offered. âI mean, I was just joking butââ
You widen your eyes. âYou were? Oh my God, Iâm sorry, I thought you wereââ
âNo, it was my fault. That was a little out of line for me. Iâm sorry.â He was laughing and you felt like burying yourself 6 feet under. âIt was a stupid thing to say. But if you want me to kiss you, itâs cool.â
âIt is?â Hope sparked within you.
âYeah. Itâll just be a peck anyway.â You can tell he was smiling through his voice. âJust donât tell Seowon because he might punch me in the face for kissing his sister.â
You cackled. âDeal.â
56 seconds before the 7 minutes were up, Jungkook leaned down to match your level and placed his lips on yours.Â
****
Youâre seething with rage, the embodiment of Godzilla, channeling the God of War, Ares, in your body; you harshly press Seowonâs number on your phone to call him and he answers after three rings.
âWhatâs up?â
âI will fucking murder you,â you snarl.
A beat. You hear shuffling. Then he answers, âyou already talked with Jungkook?â
The nonchalance and calmness in his voice drives you to be more frustrated than you already are. âYes, I have! What is wrong with you? Why would you plant that idea on his head?â You yell, not caring that your walls are thin and that your voice can probably be heard by the couple that lived next door. Youâre feeling a mixture of anger, embarrassment, and every negative emotion that exists at the moment. Youâre comparable to a bull who just saw the color red.
â____, it wonât be a big deal if you donât make it to be.â
âAre you hearing yourself right now?â
âDid you even let Jungkook explain?â
âI donât need him to spell everything out. I know why heâs asking me to marry him.â
âThen you know too that itâd be good for you.â
âMarrying him wonât be good for me.â
âWhy not?â
âIt just wonât!â
âYouâll get health insurance benefits that you donât get with your current jobs. You can pay less rent once you move in at Jungkookâs placeâthereâs a huge chance he wonât even let you pay him while you stay there too. Heâs away most of the time anyway, so staying there wouldnât be a problem. Plus, you can start studying for a masters degree like youâve always wanted.â
You groan. âNot like this. This is crazy.â
âThe both of you can divorce once youâve saved up a little. It really isnât that complicated.â
âItâs a sham marriage!â
âItâs a sham marriage with Jungkook.â
âThat doesnât make it better.â
âAre you sure? Your grade school diary might disagree.â
âOh my God, thatâs fucking low of you to bring that up. You just gave me another reason to hate you.â You stomp around the living room, acting like a teenager because of your brotherâs behavior. This isnât the first time he revealed that heâs read your diary before; that doesnât mean itâs less infuriating to be reminded that he has. âI swear, you better fucking sleeping with one eye open tonight. Iâm choking you to death.â
Seowon laughs out loud. âJust marry him. Heâs surprisingly amicable with the idea.â
âThatâs because youâre pressuring him! I bet you and Mom devised this entire thing together.â
âMom doesnât know. To be fair, sheâd probably have the same reaction as you. Itâs all me and Jungkook.â
âWow. You have two brains and yet none of you thought this was goddamn stupid?â
âItâs not stupid. Itâs genius if you come to think of it,â he says. âJungkook just wants to help you, dude. He wants to make sure youâll be okay and all that shit. Youâre the reason he filed for a two-week leave, did he tell you?â
Your heart does that jumping thing again. âNo.â
âWell, he did. Heâs on a break for two weeks because he wants to convince you to marry him and actually marry you within that time frame.â
âThis is nuts.â You sigh, finally flopping down the sofa and rubbing your face with your free hand. âThe both of you are nuts. How are you okay with this?â
âItâs Jungkook. I trust him. Donât you?â
âOf course, I do, I justââ you cut yourself off and frown, âI just feel like itâs unfair for him. Iâm marrying him because of military spouse benefits and what does he get?â
Thereâs a long pause, and you almost check your phone to see whether Seowon has already hung up on you or not.
âItâs better that Jungkook answers that question,â he tells you finally.
âWhy? You canât answer it on behalf of him?â
âSomething like that.â You can imagine him shrugging. âAll I know is that heâs genuinely concerned about your health and your financial status right now. So, just think about it, okay?â
âGod, fuck it, fine. Iâll think about it.â You grimace.
You hang up and glance at the door.
You donât think the conversation you just had with Seowon took that much time. The initial rush you had upon having your longtime crush propose to you is wearing off and youâre realizing that it was a dick move to literally slam the door right in Jungkookâs face earlier, leading you to stand up from your seat and look through the peephole to check if heâs still there.
He isnât, which you sigh in relief at.
As you lean against the door and regulate your breathing, you think how funny it is that Seowon is right about one thingâand that was grade school you would have been delighted at the thought of getting married to Jungkook. Heâs your dream guy; your parents loved him, his parents loved you, the both of you got along very well, and his personality and looks are everything that youâre looking for in a partner. It sucks that you live in a world where the only reason he wants to marry you is because heâs afraid youâll die because of self-neglect.Â
Your phone pings and you unlock the screen to look at the message that flashes on it.
Jungkook: hey, seowon just messaged me to say that you two already talked Jungkook: iâm sorry for jumping on you with a topic like that⊠Jungkook: iâm shit at confrontation lol Jungkook: also itâs the first time iâm proposing so give me some slack
You scoff at his audacity to joke about it this soon.
You: itâs okay You: iâm sorry too for what i did You: the answer is no btw
Jungkook: already??? Jungkook: letâs talk about it first
You: no need You: i donât want to marry you
Jungkook: oof thatâs harsh
You: sorry not sorry?
He doesnât respond and you think youâre safe. Maybe Jungkook does take no for an answer and youâre confused because youâre a little disappointed that heâs not falling on his knees, begging you to marry him like what your imagination is supplying you.
However, after you took a shower and went to check your phone again, you see that Jungkook messaged you a few minutes ago in response to your last message.
Jungkook: give me 10 days and iâll change your mind
You have the urge to go take a shower again because of how hot your body is feeling at the statement.
You: hate to break it to you but youâre not matthew mcconaughey
Jungkook: đ€Łđ€Łđ€Ł
****
Itâs not part of Jungkookâs branding to chase a woman. Typically, women chase him; they chase him in every city and country that he gets stationed in, flirting with him and hoping that theyâll get the chance to take him home for the night for a mindblowing one-night stand. They never succeed though, for despite their pretty faces and sultry gestures, Jungkook only smiles and declines every offer, saying that he had a girl waiting back home that he loved very much.
He used to think that he only used that as an excuse because heâs not the type to hook up with every attractive girl he meets. There are times when he succumbs, when he gives into the temptation of a little fun, especially after a life threatening or highly stressful missionâbut most of the time, he thinks he declines and use that pronouncement of his because his mind reverts him to the idea of you, to what would happen if he just gained the balls to ask you out.
Evidently, although asking you out and asking you to marry him are two completely different things, heâs a bit afraid that your answer will always be a hard no. Itâs what youâve been literally spelling out to him since the day he presented the idea, regardless of how heâs trying his best in swooning you or explaining how this is the perfect plan to help you gain an upper hand with your diagnosis.
âIâll file a restraining order against you, Iâm serious,â you say to him when he appears yet again outside the faculty room, waiting for you to gather your things and head home. Youâre wearing a white button up shirt and pinstripe wide leg trousers, an outfit combination that he ogles at before he goes down to business.
âYou wouldnât.â He glares at you. He gestures for you to let him take your backpack, and despite what you said, you let him. âAlso, what the fuck is in this thing? Youâll break your back if you keep using this.â He swings your backpack on one shoulder.
You laugh. âMy laptop, its charger, a couple of notebooks, books, pens, then the outputs of my students.â
âArenât they supposed to submit virtually? What happened to Google Classroom?â
âI still use it, but sometimes I like to have their work printed out so I can write the comments better. How do you know Google Classroom?â
âI have a squadronmate whose kid uses it for class.â
âAh.â You nod in understanding.
You two continue walking forward.
This has been your program for the past few days. Jungkook goes to the university you work at, heâll wait outside, youâll threaten him with something ridiculous, heâll take your bag, heâll offer to take you to dinner, youâll decline, and then heâll drive you home anyways. Before that routine ends, heâll lean on your door frame and give you his best puppy eyes, asking you to marry him for the sake of your welfare, and youâll scowl at him, insisting that you donât need his help to survive.
âDinner?â he asks, right on schedule.
You glance at him. âNo. I want to go home and sleep for 12 hours.â
âBusy day?â
âYep.â
âYou know, if you marry me, you wonât have to work two jobs and overexert yourself.â
He doesnât need to turn to you to know that youâre giving him a dirty look. âI wonât marry you, Jungkook.â
âWhy not?â
âBecause marriage doesnât work that way.â
âIt does. Billionaires do it all the time. The mafia does it too. Itâs always been some kind of transaction.â
âWell, if I marry you, what do you get?â
âThe assurance youâre taken care of.â
âThatâs cheesy.â
You share a laugh and he grins.
âItâs true,â he says. âIâll be fine as long as you are.â
He waits for you to quip back a reply, flickering his eyes to you when it takes longer than usual. Instead of the sneer heâs expecting, you appear to be flustered, an expression that is very recognizable for him whoâs known you since foreverâan expression that makes it too obvious for Jungkook that the crush you had on him that he thought has been long gone was still there. Heâs been seeing it a lot lately, particularly when heâs uttering lines that sound flirtatious on purpose; heâs positive that youâll threaten to kill him when you discover that he basks on the fact that he can still make you all flustered and cute, which encourages him to do and say anything that would elicit a reaction from you. Was it unethical to seduce you into marrying him? He might have to rethink that part too.
Reaching the parking lot, he unlocks the doors to his vehicle and places your bag inside the backseat. He watches you walk around the car, about to go to the passengerâs side, but then you wobble a bit and his attempt to get inside is instantly forgotten.
âHey,â he strides to where you are, gazing at you as you now hold onto the hood, âyou alright?â
You raise your chin up. âKook, can you get my bag?â
Jungkook doesnât need to be told twice. Heâs swinging the door again and getting your bag from the other end of the backseat while you get on the passengerâs seat, keeping the door wide and placing your legs outside, your feet planted on the concrete.
âWhat do you need?â he asks, crouching in front of you and zipping the bag open.
âGlucometer.â
He halts. âWhat does that look like?â
âItâs in the yellow bag. There.â You point at it right when he rummages through a certain part.
He brings it out and you take it from his grasp. Your movements are sluggish but he can discern that youâre doing your best not to be too slow; heâd present to help but he knows that he might prolong what youâre doing due to his cluelessness, so he just observes, noting how youâre pricking your finger with a device and then pressing it lightly to the glucometer which shows that your blood sugar is low.
âApple juice,â you mutter to him and he finds it faster than the last one.
You grab the juice pouch from his grasp, prying the straw attached on the back, pushing its end for it to pop out of its plastic coverâthen your hand shakes, preventing you from continuing and punching in the straw properly.
âLet me do it,â he says.
You donât fight him, you just slump against the seat as Jungkook picks up from where you left, and the moment he does the job and guides the straw to your awaiting lips, a long exhale through your nose escapes you.
âHow are you feeling?â he whispers. He didnât notice that he was holding his breath the entire duration of the scene.
Another sigh. âBetter.â
âDoes this happen a lot?â
You seem to hesitate. âNot a lot. Just when life gets a bit too hectic.â
â____ââ
âJust take me home.â You donât give him the chance to lecture you. âPlease, Jungkook.â
Defeated, he nods. âAlright.â
âThank you.â
He helps you position yourself properly on the passengerâs seat. âBut weâre talking about this at your place.â
Before you can protest, he closes the door.
****
Lee Hyunwoo was the name of the guy that you brought home for Christmas Eve eight years ago. It was the first time that you did, and Jungkook hated how Hyunwoo was considerably handsome, intelligent, and kindâthe exact kind of person he always imagined you deserved.
In the short time Hyunwoo spent with theirs and your family that night, everybody loved him and was already inviting him to the next gathering, all the while Jungkook avoided him at every cost, puzzled by this strong dislike he was feeling for your guest. He was annoyed at the manner in which Hyunwoo had an arm around your waist the entire evening, how you grinned up to him, eyes sparkling and all that shit. Hell, you used to look at him like that.
âHoney, can you get the mango float we have in our freezer?â Jungkook heard your mother tell you, and without thinking, he stood up from his chair and made a beeline to where you were, telling you heâd accompany you to your house.
âThatâs fine,â you told him. âItâs literally next door.â
âYeah, but it might be heavy.â
âItâs not.â
âBetter safe than sorry.â
You rolled your eyes and agreed then, excusing yourself from Hyunwoo who was in an engaged conversation with Seowon. The pair were geeking out because of their mutual love for the MCU and the next film slated to be released the following year.
Upon arriving at your home, you dashed to the kitchen with Jungkook trudging behind you. He wasnât sure what his next course of action should be now; all he wanted was some alone time with you, away from the presence of that college boyfriend of yours, but now that he had that, he couldnât think of anything that he wanted to say or do. He wasnât even sure why he was feeling a bit jealousâwas it because of that saying? Wherein people are bound to want what they canât have? Or was it that you only appreciate what you had when youâve already lost it?
âHow long have you and Hyunwoo been dating?â he asked, leaning against the counter as you pulled your freezer open.
âFour months, I think.â
âFour months? And you already brought him home?â
You snorted at his tone. âHis family is in another country so I thought itâd be nice to invite him.â
âYou must really like him then.â
âYeah, but Iâm not in love with him or anything.â You placed the mango float on the space beside Jungkook on the counter. âHeâs nice, and he likes me too.â
âDoes he treat you well?â
You flashed your eyes at him, amusement dancing in them. âWhatâs with that question?â
âWhatâs with it?â
âNothing, itâs just thatâŠâ you trailed, a smirk etched on your face. âWait a minute, are you⊠you canât possiblyââ Jungkook was widening his eyes, ready to deny your accusation once you questioned whether he was jealous of Hyunwoo or notâ âare you pulling an overprotective brother skit on me, Kook?â
Fuck, thank God, he thought.
âI prefer âoverprotective friend skitâ,â he said.
âThat doesnât have a nice ring to it.â
âBut Iâm not your brother.â
âYou donât have to be, Iâm just saying that you and Seowon have been acting similar since Hyunwoo and I arrived.â
âNonsense. Seowon likes him.â
âOh, so you donât?â
He pressed his lips into a tight line.
âDid you just admit that you donât like Hyunwoo?â you asked, chuckling. He was grateful that you didnât seem to be offended by it.
âI didnât say I didnât like him.â
âInstead you implied it.â
âNo, I didnât.â
âYou kinda did.â
He heard you laugh and he couldnât help but allow himself to laugh as well.
âIâm sorry,â he apologized. âMaybe Iâm just not used to you dating anyone. You are chronically single.â
âCanât say youâre wrong.â You snorted and picked up from the mango float, marching back to his house and gesturing for him to follow you.
He did, no words spoken between the both of you once more. Though when you were entering their place again, with Jungkook holding the door open for you, he mentioned something he never reckoned heâd have the guts to mention out loud.
âWhen you open my gift,â he began, âdonât do it in front of Hyunwoo, okay?â
âWhy not?â You werenât paying attention to where you were going, intrigued by his warning.
âHe might not like it. Youâll see.â
That night, at the comfort of your bedroom, Hyunwoo nowhere near but instead sleeping at the coach downstairs in your living room, you opened Jungkookâs gift and saw that it was a necklace with your birth flower as its pendant.
You smiled, rolling your eyes to yourself, and slept with that giddy look never leaving your face.
****
âNot so fast,â Jungkook grunts.
Did he think that you were going to be less difficult since he was helpful earlier? Yeah, he did. He likes to think that if it wasnât for him, you would have taken longer in feeding yourself with apple juice, so he at least wanted a thank you in the form of your willingness to have an adult conversation with him tonight. However, that clearly isnât the case because when he walked you up to your apartment like he always did, youâre attempting to lock him out, shutting the door as fast as you can once youâre inside, thus trying to prevent him from initiating that talk he wanted the two of you to have.
âSeriously?â He successfully pries the door open and you scowl at him.
âJungkookââ
âNo, you donât get to reason your way out of this. Iâm done hearing you out. Itâs your turn to listen to me.â He steps inside your apartment.
You groan, striding to the sofa and throwing your bag there. âYou canât force me to marry you.â
âIs marrying me so fucking bad that you canât get over it for health insurance benefits that can really help you?â He demands, infuriated.Â
âThatâs not the issue.â
âThen what is?â
âYou can get arrested!â you exclaim. âAnd so can I! Does that not freak you out?â
âWeâll only get arrested if we get caught.â
âIâm not willing to take the risk.â
âIâm not willing to see you die.â
You scoff out a laugh. âWho the fuck said anything about dying? Iâm not dying.â
âYou almost passed out on me. You almostââ
âItâs an error on my part, I admit.â You sigh. âWhen I get busy and preoccupied, sometimes I forget to check my sugar levels regularly throughout the day. Iâm sorry.â
âAnd you expect to be convinced that you have everything handled?â
âGod, Iâm not a child. Stop treating me like I canât do shit for myself.â
âPlease, ___,â he approaches you with the most pleading expression he can muster, and he watches as your hard expression crumbles, âjust accept my help. Itâs really not a big dealâyou wonât even see me often, so keeping up with the whole marriage ploy wouldnât be difficult. Weâll divorce in two years, we can pretend we never got married after that.â
âYou just donât get it, donât you?â
âWhat do I not get? If you think I donât understand something, then explain it to meââ
âI canât marry you,â you say. You do so like itâs final, like thereâs no point in arguing with you because he can never change your stand on this. As heâs pleading with his eyes to urge you to agree, youâre communicating with your eyes in a similar way thatâs wishing he would just drop this. âItâs wrong.â
His eyebrows furrow. âThis isnât the time to go on your high horse and decide whatâs wrong and whatâs not. Itâs a fraudulent marriageâof course, itâll be wrong to some degree.â
âNo, I meanâŠâ You turn away from him, rubbing your face in exhaustion. âItâd be wrong of me to marry you. Iâm taking advantage of you if I do, and I donât like that.â
Jungkook shakes his head, frustration worsening at the childlike excuse. Surely, you werenât that naive, were you? âYouâre not. Iâm not doing this against my own will. Besides, we get extra pay just for being married. If it makes you feel better, I wonât split it with you.â
âThat wonât make me feel better.â
âThen what will?â
You flop down on the coach and lean back, closing your eyes. He knows heâs being a pain in the ass but he canât just stand here and do nothing. He thinks heâs already come too far in convincing you, he isnât going to back out now. Every single day spent together, he can feel you warming up to the idea of marrying him for health insurance. Your connection and entirety of your relationship has been off the charts recently that itâll be harder for him not to be assured that before he leaves for his job, youâll be taken care off.
Jungkook goes to the spot beside you, sitting down. Your knees bump together, he keeps on gazing at you, waiting for you to focus on him; a minute passes and his gaze moves to your hand thatâs laying on the small space between you.
Without overthinking, he stretches out and clasps it, allowing his fingers to play with yours that finally captures your attention. The moment he glances up, he sees that youâre staring at him and he doesnât let go, he even smiles, a quiet promise that heâs always willing to listen to whatever you want to tell him.
You hesitantly smile back. âYou know,â your eyes train back to your intertwined fingers, Jungkook reveling in the warmth of your skin, gaining more confidence in acting out his feelings, âthere was a time wherein I would have said yes immediately if you asked me to marry you.â
He smirks, canât deny how hearing that inflates his ego a bit although this route in the conversation isnât where he expected to go. âWhat changed?â
âFor one, I grew up.â
âOuch.â
You laugh. Then you stay quiet for a while before speaking. âCan I confess something?â
That piques his interest. âAnything.â
âBut you have to promise not to make fun of me.â
âThatâs impossible.â He teases. âWhat is it?â
You stall, readjusting your position so that you can directly face him. Jungkook doesnât let go of your hand, he keeps it in his grasp, his thumb rubbing along the expanse of your knuckles.
âI like you, Jungkook. I really really do,â you finally say and he blinks, startled.
It shouldnât surprise him, considering that itâs been long established that he knew of your crush already, though he doesnât seem to have anticipated for you to boldly admit it when all these years, itâs only been some kind of unspoken understanding that neither of you downright acknowledged.
You continue speaking. âIn fact, I like you so much that maybe it developed into love at some pointâIâm not sure. Iâm at this stage of no longer being afraid of what I feel, I think? Most of the time, I just let it occur like itâs something so natural. Like itâs a feeling that I can never get away from? Like whatever I do, thereâs no way to shake you.â You chuckle half-heartedly. âThough never in a million years would I have thought that Iâd confess all of this. What for anyway? I donât want you to be burdened with what my teenage heart couldnât rub out.â
His mind is racing; hundred thoughts, hundred scenarios, hundred experiences heâs spent with you since the day you met. Jungkook never realized how much he needed you to say that you liked himâthat maybe you even loved himâuntil he heard it from your very mouth that you did, causing every inhibition and doubt he had to vanish. Now, he only wants to engulf you in an embrace and shout Yes, I feel the same way! Sorry for being a fucking corward and not doing this first!
He would have done all of that in a flash if it didnât appear that you still had something to say. Based on your rather constipated posture and the hand heâs holding thatâs becoming clammy, he discerns that youâre just in the first part of what you wanted to admit.
âActually, thatâs also why I canât let myself marry you,â you say. âI know it sounds ridiculous, but I donât know⊠it feels really icky somehow. I feel like Iâm holding you hostage, or that Iâm tricking you because of an ulterior motive, or that Iâm defying the laws of the universe by having the chance to marry you. Iâm not sure. I just know that I donât want to marry you if it means Iâll only get to do so because you think youâre doing me a huge favor. I donât want to be your charity case, KookâI deserve to be more than that, you know? Iâm not traditional or whatever but if itâs not for love, Iâm not keen on getting married.â You abruptly pull away from his clutch, embarrassment washing on your features by what you stated. âPlus, two years might not be that long but what happens when you meet someone and you like her? How can you explain that youâre only married to me because I need it for my medication? Itâll just be unnecessarily messy. I donât want to hold you back from those kinds of things. I donât want to be a hindrance.â
Thatâs his cue. Thatâs when he knows heâs supposed to kiss you and take your breath away, to admit that heâs certain that he has loved you since that one time when he was in the Naval Academy and although the training was hard as fuck, the thought of you gave him strength and he didnât want to see anyone as much as he wanted to see you afterâthat when you and Seowon visited him, that familiar urge to have you alone was all he felt the entire time, solidifying the idea that perhaps he didnât just see you as a friend.
âYouâre unbelievably dense, ___,â he murmurs, smirking at the play of events, and you glance at him, expression showing disbelief that heâs somehow treating this matter lightly.
âWhat?â
âDo you honestly think I go around and offer marriage to every woman out there who can benefit from being a military spouse? Do you think Iâm that generous? Iâm not. I wouldnât ask anyone to marry me for the same reason if they werenât important to meâor if I didnât like them. Iâm not that much of a saint,â he adds. âI mean, Iâm taking a two-week break to convince you to marry me. Iâm spending time with you every single day. Iâm driving for almost an hour and a half, enduring the traffic to get from my apartment to the university you work in to do thatâand you think this is because I want to be charitable?â
Silence. Your forehead wrinkles. He thinks youâre still not getting the point.
âIâm in love with you, ____,â Jungkook says.
Your breath hitches in your throat. Youâre opening your mouth, then closing it, then opening it again, then pressing it into a thin line. He thinks you look cute, being taken aback like this, and heâs wishing that heâs done this sooner so that the last five days of him chasing you around like a lost puppy was spent with talking more about whatâs possibly waiting for yours and his relationship next.
âAre you serious?â you ask after what seems like forever. âOr are you just saying that because youâre that desperate to have me on board with the whole fraudulent marriage thing?â
âGodââ Heâs inching closer to you now, laughing, watching your lips twitch at his reactionâ âIâm convinced that you were born into this earth to drive me fucking crazy.â
And just like that, he no longer restrains himself from kissing you.
It takes you a few good seconds before you will yourself to move. You canât seem to process the reality of Jungkook admitting that he was in love with you and then taking the liberty to plant his lips on yours. Youâre not complaining, of course, but you are a bit overwhelmed that it literally makes you freeze, unaware of what youâre supposed to do now that your fantasies are coming into life.
However, once you feel him angle his head to the side, doing so to deepen the kiss, your reflexes kick in and youâre kissing him back, encircling your arms around his neck and leaning towards him, Jungkook sighing in what appears to be relief. He grips your hips to support you as you try to straddle him, but your movements are so clumsy that you end up sprawling against his chest instead, perched on a leg of his that provides pleasure on the spot you need him the most. He chuckles at your lack of gracefulness, gliding his lips to your cheek and down to your jaw, nipping.
âThis okay?â he whispers with a palm drifting to your bottom.
You nod and Jungkookâs mouth is back on yours in an instant. He squeezes your ass, takes his time in fondling with it, cheekily slapping whenever you get brave yourself and push your tongue past his lips, before he skims his hand lower to your thigh and signals for you to mount him. Upon being properly sat on his lap, you get an immediate feel of his hard length through his jeans, prompting your imagination to run wild and induce the filthiest things he can do to you if neither of you stops.
âHoly shit,â he curses, your kisses roaming to the base of his throat where you lap and suck.
It becomes a dirty pattern for a while. The both of you will take a brief pause from making out to remove a piece of clothing or kiss every other exposed skin there is: the cheek, the jaw, the neck, the collarbones, the shoulders. Then one of you hauls the other back for another passionate kiss, hands skating everywhere on your bodies, sounds of arousal echoing inside the room; youâre starting to get lightheaded but youâre positive itâs not because of your sugar levels running low.
âI hate that it took us so long to get to this point,â he mutters.
You grin. âIâm sorry.â
âDonât apologize. Iâm the manâI should have confessed long ago.â
âWhy didnât you?â
âI donât know. âWas afraid to lose you, I guess.â He draws his head back and admires your blissed out expression. âBut then when Seowon told me you had diabetes, I panicked and thought that I might lose you either way.â
You go back to making out, Jungkook guiding your hips in grinding on his clothed length. Itâs addictiveâthe intimate feel of him, how heâs not shy in making sure you know how much heâs craving to be as close to you as you are to him. You think you can spend the whole night just doing this and be okay with it.
âFuck, Kook,â you groan against his mouth, a hand descending to his stomach and to his manhood, âyouâre so⊠so fuckinâ hard.â
Youâre palming him now, tracing the erection evident under his boxers.
He lets out a grunt. âYeah, baby, I know.â
âDo you⊠do you want meââ Youâre breathless, not able to continue whatever it is that you want to say.
He understands you just fine though. âNo.â He shakes his head. âDonât do anything.â
Youâre not sure what Jungkook means by that. How are you supposed to do nothing when you want to do everything to him? You soon comprehend what he means when he guides you to lay down on the sofa, when his lips skim lower and lower, passing your breasts, giving them the attention they deserve, until he goes lower than that and discards your underwear, kissing you in between your legs.
Itâs like heâs releasing all the pent up emotions heâs been keeping all these years. His tongue and fingers are relentless, his voice is telling you that heâs eager to coax an orgasm out of you, and as he lifts himself up to return to his previous position, face hovering yours, youâre positive that heâll get everything he wants because without a doubt youâll give him everything he wants from you too. Hell, if he uses this opportunity to ask you to marry him again, you might answer yes straight away, no longer bearing in mind the worries you expressed to him earlier.
Although did that even matter anymore? Jungkook said he loved you. He said you drove him crazy. You never thought youâd come to see the day heâd utter those words but here you are. The man of your dreams is kissing you, pleasing you, and looking damn enthusiastic as he does all of that.
âLast chance to stop me,â Jungkook teases. His eyes are glassy and you can feel his cock nudging on your thigh.
You giggle, bringing his head closer to press another long kiss on those pink and plump lips of his. âPlease never stop.â
âNever?â
âNever.â
âIâm going to take you up on that.â
âPlease do.â
After this night, youâre certain that youâll never allow yourself to be with another man aside from Jungkook. At the back of your head, you always thought that you were his, regardless if that wasnât true or that there was no real relationship to prove thatâhowever, at this moment, as he thrusts in and out languidly, you unquestionably know that you are. You belong to him now and he belongs to you; he lets you know through his love-filled gaze, his passionate kisses, and the manner wherein he moans your name.
âI love you,â he says, like heâs still in deep longing for your touch and affection.
You hum, tangling your fingers through the strands of his hair. âI love you, Kook.â You stare at his eyes. âI canât remember a time I didnât.â
A boyish grin erupts on his features.
Time passes by quickly. In a few more of his kisses, of the intoxicating slam of his hips, of his seductive whimpers, youâre coming beneath him, Jungkook pulling out and jerking his length until he too comes, his seed landing on the base of your tummy. You have the nerve to giggle at that, grinning at him with low-lidded eyes, and Jungkook hastily wipes his cum off your skin, attacking you with another passionate kiss that leaves you breathless.
âThereâs no way youâre not marrying me after this,â he murmurs.
You teasingly graze your teeth on his bottom lip. âIâll think about it.â
He groans. âDonât think about it. Just say yes.â
âAt least let me sleep on it, Kook.â
âFuckâfine.â He grabs your sides and pulls you flush against his body. âGuess Iâll have to keep on convincing you until you agree.â
****
âGod, why is this so difficult?â Jungkook whines, keeping you in his embrace, head tucked between your cheek and shoulder.
The air is very humid and Jungkookâs in his naval aviator uniform, which doesnât look cool in a sense that air is properly flowing through the material. He doesnât care though, doesnât care that itâs sticking to his skin as he refuses to let you go, not even when you complain playfully.
âKook, Iâm fucking sweaty.â
âI donât care.â
You laugh.Â
Heâs leaving to return to his duty and youâre here with him outside the base before he enters, being with him until the last possible minute because thatâs how much of a good wife you are.
Yes, you and Jungkook did get married. Three days ago in fact, at the city hallâs courtroom. Neither of you invited your parents; they didnât know about the occasion and you refused to tell them, afraid that they may be critical about yours and his choices when they discover the true reason why youâre rushing to be wed. The only people that remained to be aware of it was Seowon and his girlfriend, Winnie, who served as the witnesses, which was fine by you. In your understanding, this was just for the papers and your health, and not the real deal yet to be celebrated lavishly.
âIâll propose to you again after a couple of years,â Jungkook promised after the ceremony. âLetâs renew our vows and Iâll give you an amazing wedding.â
You would have told him that there was no need, but who were you kidding? You did want a proper wedding with Jungkook. The previous week didnât even feel like you were newlyweds. Yes, the both of you compacted all of the dates you could have if one of you werenât such a chicken in five days, and yes, though the honeymoon stage was experienced and practicedâit was only because you were a new couple who after years of hiding their feelings for one another, was now finally free to express it as much as they desired.
âCall me everyday?â you ask when he finally pulls back, Jungkook pecking your lips one more time.
âDefinitely.â He smiles. âVisit me whenever possible?â
âOf course.â You kiss him too.
His smile transforms into a grin. âTake care of yourself, alright? Keep me updated all the time. No sugarcoating allowed.â
âYes, Lieutenant.â
Rolling his eyes, he gives you another kiss and engulfs you in a tight hug, lifting you off the ground that causes you to giggle.
âOkay, pack it up, love birds!â Seowon shouts.
The two of you turn to your brother whoâs leaning on his car, the vehicle that was used to transport the three of you today. Youâre still in the middle of moving your belongings at Jungkookâs place and Seowon was kind enough to volunteer helping, always dubious that you could do stuff on your own. Despite your reluctance, you let him assist you, mostly because youâre trying to make a conscious effort in not upsetting him again.
Letâs just say that when the judge hailed you husband and wife at the civil wedding, Seowon wasnât thrilled to see that the kiss shared between you and Jungkook wasnât as fake as the supposed sham marriage, leading him to the conclusion that in the middle of Jungkookâs ruse of convincing you to be his wife, something must have happened that led to your approval and that rather 18+ rated kiss. Mostly though, heâs just offended that neither of you thought of telling him that you were an official couple before the wedding.
Jungkook unwillingly places you down.
âI think I need to go,â you say.
He nods with a sigh. âIâll miss you.â
âIâll miss you too.â
âCall you tomorrow?â
âYes.â You affectionately caress his cheek, bringing his face down for the very very very last kiss.Â
He leans into it. âFuck, I donât want to leave.â
âSeriouslyâhurry up!â Seowon shouts and you pull back.
âI will kill him,â you tell Jungkook.
âHeâs your brother,â he says. âAnd now, my brother-in-law, so I canât let you do that.â
âThat might be your very first red flag, Jungkook, insinuating that youâre choosing my brother over me.â You cross your arms. âTell me, if the both of us were drowning, would you save me or Seowon?â
âYou,â he answers without missing a beat.
You narrow your eyes. âIs that the truth?â
âOf course. Seowon would probably undrown himself anyway and youâre shit at swimming. Itâs an easy choice.â
You punch him hard on the shoulder and he feigns hurt, snickering. âFor the record, I donât think anyone can âundrownâ themselvesâbut fine, you pass the test.â
Jungkook faces Seowonâs direction and does a final salute, your brother returning it swiftly, and just like that, you and him share your last farewells. You watch as he goes through the entrance of the base and sends you a wave of goodbye; you weakly copy the gesture and stand there for a few seconds, just watching him fade from your view the further he trudges inside. You donât think saying goodbye to him ever felt this heavy, and you blame it on the fact that after all this is the first time youâre saying goodbye to him with the assurance that he loves you tooâand that alone weighs millions.
You spin on your heel and go to Seowon whoâs already in the driverâs seat. As soon as you get in and wear your seat belt, heâs giving you a dirty look.
âWhat?â you ask.
âPlease never do that in front of me again.â
His statement makes you smirk. âWhy? Didnât you want this?â
âWant what?â
âMe and Jungkook to be together.â
âWhen on earth did I say that?â
âYou previously admitted that you were lowkey playing cupid by suggesting that Jungkook marry me for health insurance.â
A short pause. âYeah, but that doesnât mean I have to watch you two reenact a porno every fucking time.â
âWeâre notââ
âYou are. Donât deny it.â He grumbles. âGod, every time I see you two, itâs like Iâm Ross from that one Friends episode where he accidentally sees Monica and Chandler doing it from the window of his apartment.â
âYeah, I remember that.â You laugh. âIn my defense, you havenât seen me and Jungkook actually do the deed soââ
âWait, so the two of you have?â
Your expression drops. His tone is approaching older brother protectiveness territory and youâre quick to attempt diffusing the situation. âI will not dive into that. All Iâm going to say is that Iâm a grown adult and so is Jungkook.â
He grimaces before starting the engine. âYeah, never dive into that. I donât need to hear the details.â
You share a laugh and then silence fills the car.
You press your lips together, looking at him while he backs out from the parking spot. âHey, thanks, by the way. For driving today, and for offering to help me later, and maybe for also never minding your own business.â
You recall how Seowon was the one who couldnât stop worrying about you and finding a solution when you told your family that you had type 1 diabetes. Your parents were concerned, they pestered you for months to force you to accept financial assistance from them, but they gave up soon after. Seowon though? He never did. He persisted through every outburst you had; he tolerated your bitchiness and your dirty looks all the time. Out of everyone in your life, you always felt like regardless of how stubborn and prideful you could be, Seowon was worseâin the best way possible.
A crooked smile illuminates his face. âYouâre my kid sister. Itâs my job to never let you experience peace in your whole life.â
You scoff. âWell, youâre damn great at what you do.â
When you reach Jungkookâs apartment, unloading the boxes and arranging your stuff to its designated places, your heart swells in happiness as the reality sinks in that your life is heading in the right direction after months of feeling hopeless. It drives you to be more thankful to the little things, to the people who were always by your side, to your previous circumstance that although wasnât ideal was still manageable. A lot donât get to have that kind of privilege and you promise yourself that youâll make an effort to find more things to be grateful about from this day forward.
âOh, I forgot to mention,â Seowon approaches in the middle of you arranging your books on Jungkookâs near to empty shelf, âWinnie wanted to give you this. She would have handed it over herself but sheâs going to be busy for the next few days.â
You take the frame from his hand and see that itâs the picture Winnie took of you and Jungkook after the ceremony. Itâs in the restaurant that you ate at to celebrate the civil wedding. Jungkook was grinning at you with an arm around on the backrest of your chair, you were leaning towards him, smiling at the cameraâand the absolute selling point of why this was the best picture ever taken was because of how cake icing was scattered on your faces, places on spots in an artistic manner like it was planted there on purpose for the picture and not because the both of you were being silly that instance.
You think it showcases your relationship with Jungkook marvelously. Itâs playful, itâs sweet, and most of all, it demonstrates how you two are clearly great friends.
âThis is so beautiful, Seowon,â you say.
You immediately send Winnie a heartfelt thank you message for the gift and continue to take a photo of the frame, sending it to Jungkook as well.
Once you hit send, you type out a message to accompany it.
You: look how cute we look đ„č
Youâre certain itâll take hours before he replies so you keep your phone again, going back to staring at the picture which is now placed on one of the shelves. Itâs the sole picture frame you have with Jungkook. In fact, itâs the only picture that Jungkook has in his apartment, and you like to think that this might be the mark of the new beginning youâll have with him. Even though your relationship wouldnât be traditionally explored given his occupation and how heâs most likely going to be away a lot, you donât mind.
If thereâs one thing you really believe in, itâs that waiting for Jungkookâwhether consciously or unconsciouslyâalways brings out the best outcomes.
gentle reminder: this author loves feedback! let her know your thoughts if you enjoyed reading this fic and youâll add 100+ points in her writing motivation meter âĄ
#jungkook#jungkook x reader#jungkook imagines#jeon jungkook#jeon jungkook x reader#jeon jungkook imagines#bts#bts imagines#bts x reader#bts drabbles#jungkook drabbles#bts scenarios#jungkook scenarios#jungkook x you#jeon jungkook x you#bts x you#jungkook fanfiction#bts fanfiction#jeon jungkook fanfiction
6K notes
·
View notes
Text

â° pairing. â emo!hs x reader
â° genre. â early 2000s au, best friend's older brother, childhood friends to lovers, smut, light angst.
â° word count. â 7k+
â° warnings. â swearing, family issues, partying, mentions of drinking/drugs, friendship betrayal (?), smut [virginity loss, teasing, fingering, soft dom!hs, "i've waited so long for this" type shit], reader and hs are both 18+, minors dni. very cliche shit. reader doesnât know much abt sex tbh.
â° synopsis. â Love notes were slipped into your locker on a daily basis. Variations of messy, boyish handwriting on yellow sticky notes stacked upon themselves by the end of each school day. Every Friday night you were invited out with the promise of, "You'll have fun, just give it a chance."
You could have any guy you wanted, no doubt about it. Yet somehow, the only one you do want is the tattooed, gothic one that lives a few doors down from your best friend.
â° a/n. revamping this from my bts acc with heeseung this time bc im absolutely obsessed with this couple and need them to exist in every possible universe :P revamping part 2 as we speak and ill post in a few days hehe
â° perm taglist. @intromortal @aanniikkaa @meetletsinmontauk @lovelyyf @right-person-wrong-time
âââ
Two monumental events had been etched into your brain for eternity, the first being sneaking out in the middle of the night to meet up with your friends at the community pool. The second is fifteen minutes upon arriving at the pool, seeing your best friend's older brother emerge from the chlorine-scented water as if he were Poseidon and realizing you were utterly infatuated by him.
Lee Chaeryeong isn't blind to this, immediately pulling you away from the crowd to question the longing gaze on your face. "Out of every fucking guy here with us, you're making eyes at my brother? You do know that Heeseung is completely gross, right?" She was so furious, you're surprised no steam was blowing from her ears.
Deny it all you want (and you certainly did within that fifteen-minute interrogation); Heeseung very clearly had a hold on you that lasted many years following that fateful night. He wasn't even your usual type; he wouldn't be caught dead around the guys you're typically drawn to. He had a rebellious side; maybe that's why getting him out of your head was nearly impossible.
Of course, the eternal guilt of falling for your best friend's older, dumbass brother is also difficult to get out of your head.
It can't be helped, really. Anytime you'd visit their home, your eyes would automatically wander through the crack of his doorway as you'd pass by. Whether he was messily cutting his dark hair while blasting Pierce the Veil from his speakers or giving himself a new Stick-and-Poke tattoo as he waited for a CD to finish burning, you long to break away from Chaeryeong for a moment to speak to him. Ask him about his day or if his band had any upcoming gigs. You'd even talk to him about paint drying if it meant you'd get to be in the same space as him.
So it's safe to say you were completely heartbroken when he left for college. Chaeryeong, however, is over the moon. Or so you think.
"⊠He's your brother, though. You don't think you're gonna miss him at all?" You ask, watching Chaeryeong delicately paint your fingernails a pretty shade of purple.
She shrugs, "I mean⊠it's definitely gonna be weird not seeing him around the house every day, but he'll still visit sometimes. Maybe."
Deep down, Chaeryeong knows Heeseung won't visit much. He'd been craving freedom and independence from their parents for ages, and moving away for college gave him the perfect opportunity to live as he pleased. They weren't fond of the clothes he wore or the friends he had, and absolutely couldn't bear the music his band makes. They criticized every little thing about him, and he'd finally be getting a break from them.
As you're about to ask Chaeryeong if she's okay, she stands from her bed, screwing the nail polish closed. "I'll be back. I have to let Bam out." Her voice is shaky, and she doesn't look at you as she exits the room.
You take the opportunity to make your way down the hall and to Heeseung's door, which he has conveniently left wide open as he scrolls on his desktop. His knees are pressed against his chest as he's heavily focused on editing his Facebook page. There's a rock song playing lightly from another tab that you can't quite identify; he uses his free hand to gently tap along to the beat of the music.
His room is covered in cardboard boxes, soon to be packed into his parents' minivan and making their way to the University of San Francisco dorms.
Your knuckles tap on his wooden door, your heart fluttering when he turns around, and you realize he's changed the ring on his lip from black to silver.
He nods at you, "What's up?"
"Nothing. I just know you're leaving in the morning, and I wanted to say bye. And wish you good luck, of course." You're not sure why you're so heartbroken. It's not like the two of you were ever a thing. It's not like this would be your last time seeing him. Why were you so upset?
"Cool, thanks." You assume that was his way of indirectly telling you to get out until he reaches into his desk drawer and says, "Catch," before tossing something towards you.
Careful not to mess up your manicure, you easily catch the item, unfolding what appears to be a purple bandanna. "What's this for?" You ask, inspecting the material in your palms.
"To remember me by, duh. Plus, it matches your nails.â
It'd be silly to tell him you genuinely don't need this because there was no way in hell you could ever forget about him. Instead, you clutch the bandana tightly in your fist and make a silent vow to keep it with you at all times; have a piece of him with you at all times.
You thank him and tell him it's nice, but all you can wonder is why he even wants you to remember him in the first place. Maybe you're overthinking. He probably just didn't care for the useless accessory anymore.
When you turn to leave, Heeseung stops you with a gentle call of your name. He turns his head in your direction, tugging his bottom lip between his teeth. "Can I tell you something?"
"Anything." You whisper back, praying you don't sound overly desperate for a more extended interaction with him.
A beat of silence passes, and just as he opens his mouth to respond, Chaeryeong is stomping up the stairs and belting out your name. You gaze away from Heeseung to glance behind you, listening as his sister shouts about doing each other's makeup.
"Never mind, actually. It's not important." Heeseung interrupts, and you physically feel your heart sink to the floor.
You're about to be annoying and pry a response out of him until your eyes dart to his floor, and you see it. What slipped out from his drawer when he tossed the bandana at you.
A condom wrapper. An empty one, at that.
It's embarrassing how quickly your vision becomes glossy, salty tears threatening to release with each passing second. Of course, he's fucking someone. Of course, that person isn't you. Of fucking course.
You shouldn't be surprised; he's probably more into girls with a similar aesthetic. She's probably covered in tattoos and piercings, just like him. She's probably older than you and may even have her own car, unlike you, who still had to catch rides with your parents or older sister.
It's odd, though. You're not entirely naive; you know Heeseung definitely flirts with you here and there, catching his eye when his gaze lingers on you for a second too long. There's a noticeable tension between the two of you that even your parents have teased about. And this whole time, he's been screwing someone else?
Heeseung hangs out with so many girls it'd be useless to even attempt to uncover who this mystery person is. It's none of your business, anyway.
So you leave.
You tell Chaeryeong you'll get grounded if you're home past curfew, and with tear-stained cheeks, you run home.
The following day isn't any easier.
Chaeryeong posted a photo on FaceBook of herself and Heeseung posing together, arms wrapped around each other, with the caption "c u l8r alligator XD". The comments are already flooded with responses wishing Heeseung farewell, some from family members or friends of the siblings.
"Don't 4get abt me!!!!!! >:( "from a girl with red hair catches your eye because it's the only one Heeseung responded to. You can't bring yourself to read his full reply, fingers moving to quickly close the tab after seeing the word 'Never.'
It's probably her, you think to yourself, the one he's sleeping with.
Maybe it's for the best that Heeseung's moving away; it'll give you some time to get over him.
And you most certainly did.
The only time he ever crosses your mind is when Chaeryeong brings him up (which she rarely does) or when you pass by his empty bedroom. Deep down, you know you'll always care for Heeseung on some level, but time away from him was just what you needed. You were too attached to him for no fathomable reason, rejecting any guy interested in you with the premise of being loyal to a guy who didn't even want you. He'd probably been sneaking girls in through his window, with you a few doors down doing magazine quizzes with his sister; blissfully unaware of what was happening down the hall.
Youâre better off without him.
That's what you've been telling yourself daily until now. It's the start of summer vacation, and Heeseung's been summoned home to spend it with his family before Chaeryeong (and you) transfer to the University of San Francisco.
Heeseung was hesitant about coming home, as he always is. In constant fear that his parents have some elaborate plan for him to change his major or set him up with someone they deem acceptable, nothing like the girls he hangs around and probably invites back to his dorm.
It took days of convincing until Heeseung finally agreed to come home, under the premise that his parents' intentions were pure and that they simply wanted one last summer together before Chaeryeong moved away for college. They also hoped he'd be able to house-sit and watch over Chaeryeong for a few days as they took their annual anniversary trip to San Diego. That, however, took some bribing and the promise of gas money on their end.
He's not due to arrive until tomorrow morning, and you've convinced yourself there's no reason for you to see him right away. You'd be fine if the next time you saw him was in a few months as you're moving into your dorm. After years of longing, you've finally moved on from him.
Some of you have debated telling Chaeryeong about your past feelings for her brother, but there's no point. It was a one-sided relationship with absolutely zero depth, nothing worth discussing. So when she nudges your side and asks if you're interested in anyone, you reply with a shake of your head.
Chaeryeong has no reaction to this; she can't remember the last time you've been into anyone despite having the entire male population at your school practically throwing themselves at you. "Maybe you'll meet someone tonight."
She's referencing the house party you're going to, which she practically had to drag you out of your room to attend. Parties are different from your scene, especially on a day like today when you were hoping to have a girls' night with Chaeryeong. She had other plans, however.
"Maybe," you respond, sighing as the house you're attending is finally in your viewpoint. "We're not staying long, right? It looks packed."
Cars are parked throughout the street, one house, in particular, being the center of attention with loud music and drunk people decorating the front yard of a suburban-looking home. Chaeryeong looks as ecstatic as ever, looping her arm in yours and picking up her pace. She doesn't respond. It doesn't matter. Her response would've disregarded your concern.
One car catches your eye as you enter the unfamiliar house; it's parked towards the end of the street, and you swear you've been in it before. You're not able to dwell on it for too long, though, because Chaeryeong has to practically yank you through the front door.
Your nerves are at an all-time high. The music is entirely too loud, and there isn't a single sober person in sight. You're not sure how Chaeryeong even found out about this party, but you really wish she would've left you out of it. You'd go now if it were acceptable, but Chaeryeong would've stayed regardless, and you refuse to leave her alone. So, you push your feelings to the side and take her hand as she leads you towards the kitchen.
"Thirsty?" Chaeryeong questions, forcing a red solo cup into your hand.
"Not at all," you respond, sighing as Chaeryeong pours something into your cup.
"It's just ginger ale," she reassures you, "I don't think either of us should get drunk here." For once, she's being reasonable.
Chaeryeong suggests you do a lap around the house in hopes of running into people you may have gone to school with. And to your surprise, a decent amount of your past classmates have decided to attend. You feel more at ease with them around, a bit more comfortable now that you're around recognizable people. Although you initially hesitated to show up, you're glad you did.
"Anybody catch your eye yet? Or are you still breaking hearts?" Your old classmate, Yeoreum, questions.
You shake your head, about to explain that you're not interested in dating right now, until she gestures behind you. "That guy is pretty cute."
You shift on the couch, looking around until you spot who Yeoreum had been gesturing towards. You locate him finally, and she's right; he is cute. He just seems so familiar.
That's when it hits you.
"Oh my God," you whisper, eyes locked on him, and you slowly rise from the couch.
It's Heeseung. And the car you recognized was his. He's here. What is he doing here? He isn't due to be back until tomorrow morning.
You almost don't realize it's him until you spot the mole under his lip. He's grown his hair out and stopped dyeing it, the slew of tattoos that decorated his arm (God, did he start working out, too?) nicely connected, now creating a sleeve, and he's given himself an eyebrow piercing. Your feelings for him come rushing back in full force.
Panicked, you reach for Chaeryeong's hand, but she's nowhere to be found. Careful not to be seen by her brother, you bow your head slightly, passing through a crowd of sweaty bodies until you finally spot her kitty heels. She's leaned against a wall, swirling around her cup while flirting with some guy you'd seen around school a few times.
Creating some much-needed distance between the two, you tug Chaeryeong towards you. "I think I just saw your brother."
"What? No, he won't even be in the city until tomorrow morning."
Frustrated, you quickly search the crowd until your eyes land on him again. You ignore the fact that he's now speaking to some girl with red hair and tattoos scattered across her arm and point in their direction, "Well, then that guy looks just like him."
Chaeryeong squints her eyes in disbelief at the boy in question until the doubt becomes confusion, and the confusion becomes realization. "Oh my God! The fuck is he doing here?" She turns towards you as if you're supposed to have the answer.
"The fuck should I know? You said he wouldn't be here until tomorrow morning!"
"Because that's what he told our parents! How was I supposed to know he was gonna be here? I never would've come if I knew!"
"What are you guys doing here?" A voice you haven't heard in so long interrupts. You don't even want to turn around.
"What are you doing here?" Chaeryeong throws back, and the two stare at each other in angry silence for a moment until Heeseung steps to the side. "Upstairs," he says, nodding towards the staircase.
"Butâ"
"Go."
Chaeryeong's clearly aggravated but makes her way towards the stairs. You remain in place with your arms crossed, raising a brow in confusion when Heeseung looks at you. "What?"
"You too."
"I'm notâ"
"I'm not asking again," he says simply. You convince yourself that you only take his command because you don't feel like fighting. Definitely not because it's interesting to have him boss you around.
Trudging up the stairs behind Chaeryeong, you wait with her in the hallway until Heeseung arrives. "Come on," he says, entering a bathroom and turning the light on. Neither you nor Chaeryeong protest; there really isn't any point.
As soon as the door is shut, Chaeryeong is yelling at the top of her lungs. "What the fuck are you doing here?! You said you wouldn't be back until tomorrow morning! Mom and Dad had to push their trip back just to give you more time to arrive, and you're already fucking here?! The fuck is the matter with you?!"
"I'm not gonna respond if you're gonna be yelling like this." Heeseung says calmly, leaning against the sink, "Let me get my questions out first, then I'll answer any of yours, deal?"
Chaeryeong glances over at you, sitting on the bathtub's edge, and you nod. She returns her attention back to Heeseung, takes a deep breath, then agrees.
"Now, what are you guys doing here?! How'd you even get invited?! And you're drinking?!" The calm demeanor from earlier slips away in a matter of seconds, clearly a hoax just to get Chaeryeong to calm down enough to let him speak.
"It's just ginger ale, and we've barely even had any! We were invited by our friends, okay? We have just as much right to be here as you do."
Heeseung scoffs, clearly unamused. "Right, and I'm assuming Mom and Dad know you're here then, huh?"
Chaeryeong nervously tucks a hair behind her ear. You wonder why you even have to be in here with them. It's not like Heeseung is your brother, anyway.
"We told our parents that we were going to a birthday party at a friend's house." Chaeryeong mumbles, barely able to look Heeseung in the eye.
"And what did they say when they dropped you guys off?"
"They didn't drop us off," you interrupt, "we walked here."
"Well, I wasn't gonna tell him that." Chaeryeong glares at you, it takes every bone in your body to not to laugh at her.
You're so over this. You didn't want to attend this dumb party in the first place, and seeing Heeseung flirting with some girl who could've been his female counterpart was the icing on the cake. It doesn't matter if your feelings for him were gone before tonight; every little emotion you'd felt for him over the years had returned (as if they ever left).
"And how exactly did you two geniuses plan on getting home?"
"Same way we got here."
"Can you please just let me handle this? Jesus ChristâŠ" Chaeryeong shoots another frustrated glare at you, and you can't help but roll your eyes at her. She turns back towards her brother, "Can you answer my questions now?"
Heeseung's eyes anxiously dart around the cramped bathroom, landing on you a few times before he's slowly nodding his head. "Alright, Mom and Dad basically forced me to spend the whole summer here, and I kept asking myself why they were so persistent about it. They finally told me they needed me to watch over you and the house for their stupid trip. I had plans too, you know? That I had to derail for them. My band could've spent this summer touring, making real money, and now we can't. So, they wanna inconvenience me? I'll inconvenience them right back."
"âŠInconvenience them by doing what?" Chaeryeong asks the exact question you had.
Heeseung shrugs, "By telling them I'm gonna be arriving a day late, duh."
You and Chaeryeong exchange an awkward glance at one other before silently agreeing not to tease him about it. If this was his badass way of retaliating, who were you to rain on his parade?
"Are you gonna tell anyone you saw us here?" Chaeryeong questions, a noticible tremble in her voice.
"As long as you guys don't tell anyone you saw me."
It's a fair trade, you accept it. You're even more delighted when Heeseung says he's taking the two of you home. Chaeryeong, however, isn't too happy about this, claiming there were so many people she didn't get to speak to, and how'd this be the last time she'd get to see them before moving away for school. You're not sure if Chaeryeong is really good at getting what she wants, or if Heeseung was tired of hearing her complain, but he finally gives in and grants her ten more minutes to socialize before meeting him at his car.
"If you're not at my car in ten minutes, I swear to God I'm calling mom." Heeseung scolds, holding the bathroom door open as the three of you finally exit.
A loud, drunk voice suddenly shouts, "Woah, Heeseung! Two girls at the same time!? You fucking beast!"
"They're my sisters, you fucking pervert!" He shouts back.
You can't even dwell on how disgusting the original comment was, only being able to focus on the fact that Heeseung just referred to you as his sister. As conceited as it may sound, you're not used to rejection or guys putting you in the friend-zone. Whatever little game Heeseung had been playing with you over the years was completely new territory. And right when you think things couldn't possibly get any worse, he calls you his sister.
What the actual fuck.
â
The next ten minutes go by in a blur; Chaeryeong has ditched you for a second time that night to talk to the guy from earlier. When it's finally time to leave, you find her Sat on his lap with her arm hung across his shoulder, laughing at an unfunny pickup line he'd used on her.
"It's time, Chaeryeong," you interrupt, helping her stand.
"Wait, wait, wait," she persists, directing her attention back to the boy, "tomorrow at five, right?"
"And not a second later." He sends her a disgusting wink that makes your skin crawl.
Chaeryeong is so love-struck you're surprised there isn't an arrow lodged in her back. She can barely form a proper sentence, erupting into a fit of giggles every few seconds as you make your way to Heeseung's car. "Wasn't he just gorgeous?"
You shrug, linking arms with her. "He was alright."
Stunned, Chaeryeong gasps at you, "Just alright? He was literally like a Greek God."
"I'm not saying he's unattractive; he's just...not really my type."
"And what is your type, Miss. Never-Has-Been-Interested-In-Anyone?"
Now, there's the question of the hour. You have to word your response very carefully; don't be too obvious about the fact that your ideal type is her older sibling.
"I guess I prefer guys with an edgier look to them, you know? Tattoos, piercings..." Despite your attempt to sound as nonchalant as possible, your heart is beating out of your chest from the mild confession.
Chaeryeong snickers, then playfully groans. "It sounds like you're describing my brother."
Now, you really have to test the waters.
"Since you brought him up, would it be so bad if I did like Heeseung? Hypothetically speaking, of course." You're not sure what prompts you to even ask this. It's not like he's even interested in you; he literally just referred to you as his sister.
A beat of silence passes as Chaeryeong gathers her thoughts, then she says, "No."
"What?"
You've finally reached Heeseung's car at this point, beating him there. You sit atop the trunk, feet hovering above the ground as the cold, nighttime air swirls around you. Chaeryeong shakes her head, "Obviously, it wouldn't be the ideal situation, but I guess I wouldn't mind as long as you talked to me about it first."
"First?" You mimic.
"Like...assuming you'd wanna date him or something. Just so I'm not blindsided, you know?"
This is the last thing you would've expected your impulsive, hotheaded (yet oh-so-loveable) best friend to be reasonable about. Mainly because she lectured you for nearly twenty minutes when she first suspected you had a crush on Heeseung.
You go to respond, but Heeseung, finally arriving at the car, captivates both of your attention. He finishes off his can of Pepsi before crushing the aluminum and tossing it to the ground. "Ready?" He questions.
There's no point in giving him a speech about littering; you're just ready to go home.
He fishes his keys from his pocket and unlocks the car door; Chaeryeong opens the backseat and jumps in before you have the chance, sprawling across the aged leather. "Move over," you nudge her foot with your knee; she pulls away from you.
Heeseung calls your name, "Just sit up front. She's not gonna move."
Now, this is new. You've ridden in the backseat of his car with Chaeryeong more times than you can count; he'd never allow either of you to sit shotgun with him; typical annoying older brother bullshit.
Don't make a big deal out of this, you say to yourself, climbing into the passenger seat of his car.
Chaeryeong and Heeseung bicker the entire ride to their parent's house, partially out of annoyance with each other, but you also get the feeling that neither of them were genuinely ready to leave the party. You're surprised Heeseung even enjoyed parties; he spent most of high school either working, hanging out at skate parks, or practicing with his band in their garage. College must've really changed him, and you're unsure how to feel about it.
Heeseung parks a few houses down from their parent's house and unlocks the doors, "Get out," he says into the backseat.
"Where are you gonna spend the night?" Chaeryeong questions, stretching her arms outward.
"I checked into a motel this morning. I'll be back here tomorrow around noon. And, hey," Heeseung turns around, pointing a finger at his sister. "Don't tell them you saw me."
Mockingly, Chaeryeong points a finger right back at him. "Telling them I saw you would be exposing myself, cock-sucker. Leave me alone." She angrily begins to climb out of the car, annoyed at how little trust Heeseung had in her.
You turn to go, but Heeseung's cold hand on your bicep stops you, "Where you goin'?"
"I'm gonna walk home from here. It's only a few minutes away," you respond.
Heeseung shakes his head, "I'm dropping you off. You haven't moved since I left, right?"
"No, but it's fiâ"
"Then your house is on the way to my motel. We're going in the same direction; might as well ride together."
It truly does make more sense to ride together, and rejecting his offer any further surely would raise suspicions. You don't want either of them to believe you'd feel uncomfortable being alone with Heeseung because that couldn't be farther from the truth. You're perplexed about your feelings now, and you don't want to do anything you'd regret just because of the confusion.
"Okay, then." You glance over your shoulder at Chaeryeong, "Will you need any help getting ready for your date tomorrow?"
Suddenly embarrassed, Chaeryeong shushes you, gesturing that Heeseung is literally right next to you and would prefer that he didn't hear about her dating life. Heeseung genuinely couldn't care less and is instead patiently waiting for his sister to get out.
She does finally, and Heeseung resumes his path to your house. He turns the radio on, switching between stations until he stops on one that's playing a song he's familiar with. You drive silently for a few minutes; the only sounds being heard are the distant noises from the car's motor and Heeseung humming along to the radio.
He breaks the silence by saying, "I was surprised to see you back there. You never really seemed like the type to enjoy parties."
You chuckle, "I could say the same for you; I don't remember you attending any in high school."
"That's 'cause house parties weren't my thing," he explains, "I went to raves or parties that would happen at the skate park. I don't really like being at someone else's house for too long; it feels too intimate."
Now that you think of it, skate park parties and raves seem much more like his scene.
"Well, I only went because Chaeryeong was going, and I didn't feel comfortable with her being there alone. Otherwise, I never would've gone." You admit, resting your head against the window.
"Thanks for looking after her, by the way. You're a good friend."
"I'd do anything for her." Your voice is barely a whisper now, getting quieter with every word you say.
Silence passes, and he says, "Did you know your guys' dorm room is gonna be right under ours?"
"Seriously?" You respond, genuinely curious.
"Mmm-hmm. My roommate, Sunghoon, and I are gonna be the worst upstairs neighbors ever." He teases as you roll your eyes. Your mind can't decipher whether this banter is playful & platonic or romantic. Everything Heeseung does confuses you.
"If that's the case, I'll be sure to move to an entirely new building."
"What, so you can have your boyfriend protect you?"
Pause. Boyfriend?
You nearly give yourself whiplash from how hard you spun around to look at Heeseung. "Boyfriend?" You ask.
He shrugs nonchalantly, keeping his eyes on the road. "I just assumed you'd have one by now. Do you?"
There he is again with his mind games. What the fuck was he talking about?
After letting out a very frustrated sigh, you mumble, "No, Heeseung, I do not have a boyfriend."
"Good. Focus on school."
Now he's pissing you off. You wish he'd shut up for the rest of the car ride. "It's nice to see you again, by the way."
Holy shit, you feel like jumping out the window.
"Yeah, great seeing you too. Oh, there's my house. I can walk from here." You make quick work of undoing your seatbelt.
"You sure? I can drop you off at the door."
"No, no. It's best if my parents don't see you so they don't accidentally tell your parents that they saw you." You lie, racking your brain for any excuse imaginable.
He nods, deciding it's best to drop you off a little further from your house. "Then, I'll see you tomorrow?"
"What?" You stop dead in your tracks, one hand clutching the door handle.
"Aren't you coming over tomorrow to help Chaeryeong get ready for herâŠthing? I'll be back home by then."
He's right; you'd be back in his house, and he'll be there this time. It's no big deal. You'd only be there for an hour (at most) to help her prepare, and then you could go the whole summer without seeing him again.
"Yeah, I'll see you then."
The following day, Chaeryeong is back to her unreasonable self, expecting you to wait at her house for her to return from her date.
"Please? We're just going to get pizza; we won't even be gone that long." She pleads, adding the finishing touches to her makeup.
You'd already spent over an hour helping her prepare, and now she expects you to do nothing but await her return. You know her heart's in the right place; she just wants to be the first to hear all the exhilarating details about her date. Still, a phone call would suffice.
"What am I supposed to do while I wait for you to come back?" You whine.
"Just hang out here! Watch a movie or something!" She suggests, trying her absolutely hardest to sound enthusiastic. Her phone buzzes in her hand before she has the chance to continue, eyes lighting up as they flicker across the bright screen.
Chaeryeong clutches her phone, locks eyes with you, then rushes towards the door. You're faster, though, quickly capturing her wrist before she's barely reached the hallway. "I'm going home."
"No! If you stay here, I'll bring you back pizza, and we can have a girls' night like we were supposed to yesterday! Come on, please?" She begs, pouting her lips.
You go to reply, but the bathroom door swings open, and Heeseung strides out. Just to your luck, he's shirtless; water droplets descend from his hair as he towel-dries it. As he enters his bedroom, he mocks his sister's high-pitched whine, earning a lethal glare and a slew of swears thrown at him.
Perhaps you should stay.
"Fine, but you're lending me your pajamas." You give in, earning an enthusiastic shriek from your best friend.
Chaeryeong wraps you in a brief, yet tight, hug before shouting, "Be back soon!" Then she's rushing down the stairs and out the front door. It's not often that Chaeryeong makes you wait for her return, but you absolutely despise it whenever it does occur. She's never back by the time she promises and gets upset when you try to call and check up on her.
And speaking of calling, you're sure your phone is dead by now. You insisted Chaeryeong bring her's along just in case, so you're left with one option.
Heeseung's door is wide open (as usual) when you go to knock. He's fully clothed now, pairing his black sweatpants with a matching black t-shirt. His hair appears mostly dry now, chaotic as ever, but dry. You don't think he's ever looked this good before.
He's sat on his bed, flipping through the latest copy of Rolling Stone when you arrive. He glances over at you and lets out a dry chuckle.
"What's so funny?" You ask.
"You're dressed like Bella Swan." He responds casually, eyes raking up and down your body.
"Who?"
"From Twilight. You know, that new movie that came out?" He seems genuinely surprised that you don't seem to know anything about this movie, not even the name of (who you suspect to be) the main character.
You lean against the doorframe, "Haven't seen it."
"It's a great movie, seriously. Some friends and I are seeing it in a few days if you and Chaeryeong wanna come." He suggests, flipping another page in the magazine.
You let him know you'll ask Chaeryeong if she's interested before remembering why you came to his room in the first place and ask if you can borrow his phone charger. Heeseung directs you to where it's plugged up by his desk, and you finally have the chance to stroll further into his room. You can't recall the last time you've been in here, but you know it looks much different than before. Many of the band posters that decorated the room were gone, his random trinkets and piles of clothes were gone, and not a single piece of his CD collection was in sight. It felt so lifeless, so unlike him. No wonder he always dreaded returning home; it probably didn't even feel like home to him.
"So," you say, attempting to break the silence, "you're here for the whole summer, huh?"
"Unfortunately." He mumbles, "Gonna try and go by sooner, convince my parents I have to sort out an issue with my dorm or something."
"It's nice to have you back, though." You admit, watching as Heeseung's gaze locks on yours.
"Yeah? It is?" He questions.
You shrug, "Of course. We practically grew up together; it was weird to not see you all the time."
He sits up now, closing the magazine and tossing it on his nightstand. There's something on his mind that he isn't saying; you can tell from the way his brows knit together and how he's anxiously tugging on his lip piercing. "It was weird to be gone," he mumbles and leaves it at that.
"By the way, I'm sorry about last night." He apologizes.
"For what? Calling me your sister?"
He laughs at this, shaking his head. "I didn't mean to do that on purpose, by the way. That guy was just...so weird, I kinda blurted out the first thing that would've made him feel weird for even thinking that."
Oh. That makes sense. You definitely overreacted.
"I meant," he continues, "I'm sorry if the whole boyfriend assumption thing upset you."
"Oh," you dismissively wave a hand at him, "that was nothing."
Heeseung raises a brow at you, "Are you sure? 'Cause you seemed pretty upset afterward, you were practically running out of my car."
There's no point in lying now, considering you weren't even the slightest bit discrete the previous night.
"If I'm being completely honest, I just felt a little awkward. But that's it, I swear." You assure him, moving to lean against the bedside table.
"Awkward about what?"
God, this was so embarrassing. Is he really going to make you humiliate yourself like this?
"Because I've never actually had a boyfriend before."
Heeseung looks genuinely shocked at your confession, eyes nearly bulging out of his head as he examines yours for any sign of deception. "You don't believe me?"
"I'm not sure. I only assumed you had one just based on how crazy guys were about you in high school. Not to mention you're, like, fucking gorgeous."
What?
"I'm what?" You ask, not entirely sure if you heard him correctly.
He repeats himself again, and you make him do it a few more times until he's too embarrassed to say it again. You somehow manage to get back on the topic of never having a boyfriend before when Heeseung asks you another question. "Have you ever...?"
He doesn't need to finish the sentence. You know what he's asking.
You shake your head.
"I'm sorry, I shouldn't have asked. It's none of my business." He berates himself, and you assure him it's no big deal and that it shouldn't even be a shocker to him.
After a half hour of talking about whatever comes to mind, you wind up sitting opposite Heeseung on his bed, legs perched up underneath your body as you go back and forth, questioning one another.
"So, when are you gonna admit you had a crush on me?" His voice is barely a whisper.
"I never did." You lie.
"Really? That sucks?"
"Why?"
He shrugs, leaning his back against the headboard. "I just always thought that maybe you and I would've ended up together at some point."
You don't remember who leans in first; it doesn't matter; all that matters is after years of longing, your lips are finally intertwined with his. He must've smoked today; you can taste the nicotine on his breath. But it doesn't matter; you don't make the slightest move to pull away. Neither does he, placing his hands on the small of your back to guide you onto his lap.
Your body is moving on autopilot, limbs moving to do whatever feels right as you silently pray not to ruin the moment. Heeseung can spot your nervousness from a mile away and stop you, "We don't have to doâ"
"I want to," you pant, breathless, "I've wanted this for so long."
"Do you trust me?" He asks.
"More than anything."
He kisses you again before adjusting your current position, slowly twisting yourselves until you're lying flat on your back. He moves his lips down towards your neck, leaving a trail of kisses in his path as he settles between your legs.
You reach up to grab a handful of his hair, nearly jumping out of your skin as his delicate fingertips creep up your inner thigh, inching closer and closer until his ghosting over your clothed pussy. "This okay?" He mumbles.
You nod, unable to form a coherent sentence. "Cute," he replies, "you're already so wet." His fingertips stroke your clit through your damp underwear; you don't think to wonder how he managed to get to it so quickly, all thoughts leaving your brain as he makes small circles using his middle and index finger.
"HeeseungâŠ" You moan, pleading for him to do more.
"I know." He assures you, using a single finger to pull your panties to the side, making just enough room for him to slide a finger into your aching cunt. "Am I really your first time?"
You nod again out of fear that a moan would slip from your lips if you even tried to speak. His eyes are locked on yours, studying your expression as he coaxes a finger inside you. You're embarrassed at how quickly your wetness coated his finger, but Heeseung doesn't care. He likes it, makes him feel fucking amazing knowing the effect he had on you.
"Take your shirt off." He says, and you do as told, pulling your top up and off your body and tossing it to the floor; making quick work of undoing your bra before he even has the chance to ask.
His lips are back on your neck instantly, trailing down to your collarbone until he reaches the curve on your breast. He halts his actions momentarily before your pitched nipple is caught between his teeth and your back arching off the bed from how overstimulating everything feels.
You curse under your breath, and Heeseung makes another comment about how cute you are, though you feel far from it. He apologizes by lapping his tongue around your nipple, easing the pain slowly as he inserts a second finger into your cunt.
You can feel his bulge against your thigh, though he doesn't even care about getting himself off. He moves over to your nipple, licking and sucking until it's completely hardened, leaving himself breathless. The two fingers that had been working your cunt had picked up the pace now, and there was an unfamiliar feeling in your gut that you couldn't identify.
"Fuck, fuck, fuck, fuckâŠ" You groan, legs trembling.
Heeseung is all too familiar with these actions and asks, "You're already close? I've barely done anything to you." He teases, chuckling to himself.
You know he's being lighthearted, but you can't help but feel embarrassed at the tears forming in your eyes from how good everything feels.
Suddenly, he's pulling his fingers out of you, and now you feel like crying for a different reason. You go to protest but stop to watch as he takes his shirt off. If you weren't sure then, it's obvious now he'd started attending the gym.
He makes quick work of tugging his sweatpants down his legs, tossing them into the abyss before reaching into his bedside table and retrieving a condom. "You're okay?"
You nod.
"Use your words."
âIâm okay, Heeseung.â
"You're still okay with this?"
"Yes."
"You sure?"
Jesus fucking Christ, the saint this man is.
"I'm positive." You assure him.
You move to pull down your skirt and underwear, but Heeseung catches your wrist. "Leave them on," he says. There are so many things going on that you choose not to question.
He pulls off his boxers in the meantime, hardened cock slapping against his abdomen with precum leaking from the tip. Though you had nothing to compare it to, Heeseung was obviously slightly larger than average. You shouldn't be surprised; it's always the guys that you'd least expect.
He tears the condom wrapper with his teeth, retrieving the rubber inside before tossing the remains to his floor. Despite being fully erect, he fists his cock a few times before sliding the condom on.
He crawls over you, left arm at the side of his head, while he uses his dick to nudge your panties to the side. "This still okay?"
"I already told youâfuck!" He cuts you off, the tip of his cock slowly making its way inside you. You feel so stretched out from this alone you don't know how you'd manage to fit all of him into you.
Heeseung must be feeling the same, swearing under his breath and commenting about how tight you feel around him. Second by second, he coaxes himself into your pussy until you feel like you could split right open. "Are you all the way in?"
"No, can't take anymore?" He asks, leaning his head down against your ear.
You're embarrassed to admit he's too big to handle on your first time, but it's the truth. You don't want to overextend yourself just to please him and end up hurting yourself.
"You can move, justâŠnot too much. Please."
Heeseung nods, "Whatever you want, angel."
He pulls his hips back and rocks himself back in, being sure to ask if you're okay with his pace. Once you confirm you feel fine and want him to keep going, he continues his movements; his eager hips snapping against yours and his cock hitting your G-spot with each deep stroke. You feel like you're on cloud nine, hands tangled in his hair as he swallows your moans.
That unfamiliar feeling from earlier returns; you feel it through your entire body this time. A moan of his name escaping your lips lets him know you're close. How he can always sense these things is beyond you; it's not worth overthinking.
"Close?" He asks, and you nod frantically.
Heeseung picks up his speed slightly, careful not to overwhelm you, but just enough to reach your climax, until finally, the bundle of nerves in your abdomen snaps, and your back is arching off the mattress as you come around his cock.
He's only a few seconds behind with his orgasm, erupting in a loud grunt when he finally reaches it. The two of you lay in silence for a moment before Heeseung finally pulls out of you and slides the condom off, tying it in a knot and tossing it into his trash bin.
"Are you okay?" He asks for what feels like the millionth time.
"I'm fine." You respond, and it isn't a lie. Physically, you feel terrific; mentally, it was an entirely different story. "Are you?"
"I'm good, I'm good."
As much as you would love to lay naked with Heeseung in his bed for the rest of the night, you know Chaeryeong will be home anytime soon. "I think I'm gonna go wash up."
He nods, crawling under his covers once you stand from his bed, tugging your skirt to its proper length as you search for your remaining clothing. "Oh, it's umâŠyour shirt, it's over there." Heeseung awkwardly gestures towards a pile of clothing by the end of his bed.
Almost as quickly as you shred yourself of them, you snatch your clothing and bundle them up against your chest.
"Listen, I know right now isn't really ideal, but I meant what I said about liking you, and really think we should talk." He says nervously, barely even able to look at you.
You almost want to laugh at how cute he is; instead, you agree to talk to him about it soon. You're about to head out into the hallway when Heeseung reminds you about your charging phone over by his desk.
You retrieve it and scan the area again, ensuring you haven't left anything else behind. When everything seems clear, you stand upright, but your eyes fall toward the trash bin near his window with the discarded condom. You're embarrassed to even look at it until you realize something seems off. It looksâŠempty.
Now, you're no sex expert, but imagine that if Heeseung had finished, there'd be something to show for it in the condom. Right?
Did he fake his orgasm? Was this another one of his fucked up mind games you'd been subjected to?
You don't know what to think as you step into the bathroom; your emotions are all over the place, and all you really want to do is go home. But you promised Chaeryeong you'd be here when she returns, so you stay.
The next time a Lee sibling asks if you're okay is twenty minutes later when Chaeryeong finally arrives and asks why your eyes are so watery.
"I'm fine." You respond, and you're lying for the first time that night.
#enhypen smut#enhypen#lee heeseung#heeseung smut#enhypen imagine#heeseung imagine#lee heeseung smut#enhypen scenario#heeseung scenarios#kpop smut#kpop imagine#kpop scencario#heeseung x reader#enhypen x reader
3K notes
·
View notes
Text
give me a reason.
LN x fem!reader



in which⊠âthe one whereâ lando needs to get his shit together, or lose the love of his lifeâŠ
hi! itâs me! back again with angst, fluff and filth! i needed to get this the hell away from me bc i worked on it so long that it kinda stopped making sense so i fear this isnât my best work oopsie! anyways, thanks for being the best bunch ever and pleaseeeeeee let me know what you think - likes, comments and reblogs are so appreciated and make me feel all warm and fuzzy inside soooo you know what to doâŠ
songs to set the vibes: hoax by t swizzle, no iâm not in love by tate mcrae, come over by noah kahan
warnings: 18+!! minors BEGONE! smut, angst!! but also fluff sooo..! friends to something worse to lovers, lando needs to be shot ngl, lando is so messy, max is yet again a victim, r loves wine a lot, alcohol use, swearing, lando has a bitchy gf (we hate her!) for a bit, r is just a girl, p in v, general sex acts, unprotected sex (sigh)
8.2k words
youâre perched at the edge of the booth watching. pietra plies you with drinks, knowing full well that itâs the only way youâre gonna make it through the evening. max sits beside her, an arm wrapped loosely around her shoulder as he glares at his best friend at the bar.
âheâs such an idiot.â max sighs, polishing off the rest of his drink in one. he knows heâs about to have his ear talked off about landoâs latest fling.
âsuch an idiot.â p scowls. you just laugh, reach for another shot of vodka.
âwhat do you guys expect?â you sneer, faking a smile as the bitter liquid warms your belly.
âyou guys are meant to be together.â max states. p nods quickly, but pauses.
ânot sure if he even deserves you though, baby.â she coos, squeezing your arm softly. you thank her with watery, bleary eyes.
landoâs on his way back over now, the pretty blonde heâd been chatting up for the last ten minutes tucked under his arm. that shuts you all up, but the cold air blasting out of the dimly lit booth could give lando and his mystery woman fatal hypothermia.
âguys, this is casey.â lando grins toothily, ushering you to move around in the booth so they can sit with you. you end up sat between pietra and casey, smushed uncomfortably into the sticky pleather. lando makes the introductions.
âmy best friend max, his girlfriend pietra, and,â he clears his throat when his eyes fall on you. âand, um, my other friend.â
my other friend.
you didnât think he could reach a new low.
âwow.â you hiccup, wriggling closer to pietra.
âi thought she was your best friend.â pietra narrows her eyes at lando, keeps her voice light and teasing.
casey is beautifully oblivious, sky blue eyes remaining firm on the racing driver at her side. you want to throttle them both.
âcourse. yeah.â he laughs it off awkwardly, before placing all of his attention on his latest conquest. it sounds harsh, sure it does, but you know lando and you know how he operates.
âiâm going. thank you,â you say directly and loudly to max and p, who are shuffling from the seats so you can get out of this prison of couples that youâd been so cruelly trapped in. âfor a nice evening.â
you donât bother to say goodbye to lando.
-
you spend the next morning crying into a cup of coffee, wrapped in three different blankets. deeply, devastatingly hungover.
you spend the afternoon that follows on the phone with max.
âitâll be over in days, hun, donât even worry about it. heâs probably trying to get her out of his place right now and canât even remember her name.â max reassures, and while history would suggest him to be right, something inside of you twists with dread. âi donât know what heâs playing at.â
âyou told me that he⊠you said he liked me, max.â you groan, hot with embarrassment.
âhe did! he does! he thinks you arenât interested so- â
âi donât wanna hear it max. i went to abu dhabi, flew in just to surprise him, to finally fucking tell him, and⊠well you know what happened.â
youâd walked into his hotel room and found him balls deep inside someone else.
needless to say, you werenât convinced that he was as hopelessly, pathetically in love with you as max claimed him to be; as hopelessly, pathetically in love with you as you were with him.
âi know, i know, but he was hurting. doesnât excuse the, uh, emotional warfare, but he doesnât know how you feel.â
âwell, at this rate, max, he never will.â
-
youâre stupid for being excited for the group dinner youâve planned. everyoneâs coming, max and p, martin, some of the boys and some of your girls. and lando. you havenât seen him for a week, not since caseygate, and if youâre being earnest, you donât really want to. at least heâll be alone, you think. he doesnât bring his hookups to group plans.
you think, and god laughs.
heâs the last to arrive, the same blonde with the same striking blue eyes tucked under the same stupid arm. you sink your glass of wine before they even get to the table, leg bouncing frantically against the chair. you swear you see pietras lips recoil into a snarl.
âdid you know he was bringing her?â she hisses quietly to max, looking at you cautiously.
âobviously not!â max defends, nostrils flaring.
âsorry weâre late.â you hear from the head of the table. âeveryone, this is casey.â
-
half an hour later, after having the magical story of their blossoming relationship shoved down your throat, you escape to the bathroom.
youâre fixing your lipgloss when the door swings open. in casey walks, complete with a hair flick and a tacky, expensive handbag.
âoh, i didnât even realise you were here tonight.â she speaks, sickeningly false. âi thought iâd notice such a good friend of landoâs.â
you suck in a breath.
âi wouldnât get too used to little old me.â you shrug, meeting her condescending grin with a better, badder one. âor lando, quite frankly. heâll get bored soon.â
you leave her in the dust, only letting yourself shake with rage when you know she canât see you. you bypass the table completely, shoot p a quick text that says youâre going home, and wait for the maĂźtre d' to hand you your coat. you wait outside the restaurant for your uber, glance back to see if anyone had even noticed youâd gone. by anyone, you mean one person, and one person only.
landoâs looking around the table, something vacant in his eyes. itâs perhaps the first time youâve properly looked at him all night. thereâs something withered and haunted in his eyes, even from so far away you can see it. he seems to be searching for something, something that he canât place. someone.
you see that same tired face in your dreams that night, joined by a pretentious, condescending smile, taunting you while you toss and turn.
-
casey becomes such a constant that youâre shocked that lando eventually comes to a party without her. itâs pietraâs birthday, and max is throwing her a party at their apartment.
youâre there early to help max set up when lando walks in, better rested than the last time youâd seen him. heâs wearing a loose white button up and light wash jeans that sit just right, curls a crown atop his head.
âno casey?â max asks subtlety as him and lando hug. you make no move to greet him.
ânah, she had other plans.â he scratches his nose as he says it, and you know itâs a lie. itâs been his tell as long as youâve known him.
max stares awkwardly between you both, gesturing his head wildly towards you when he knows youâre not looking. lando shrugs, frantic silent conversation transpiring between them until you turn around.
âfuck, forgot candles. silly me! be back in ten.â max doesnât give you a chance to breathe before heâs darting out the door, jacket slung over his arm. you glare as he disappears out the door.
âyou gonna talk to me?â lando questions, hands shoved deep in his pockets. he tries to sound light, nonchalant but it just comes off standoffish, an awkward reminder of just how much distance there is between you now, and how much there has been since he made it his personal mission to sleep with every woman he laid eyes on. except you.
âdepends.â you reply flatly.
âon?â you can hear his footsteps against the hardwood floor, inching closer and closer. your hands shake as you untangle the balloons, pouring them out of the packet onto the table. you feel the heat of him before you see him, closing in on you. itâs been so long since youâve been this close to him that you can anticipate each movement before he even makes it, your senses ultra heightened.
your breath shakes.
âon?â he presses, aware of just how stubborn you can be. âwhatâs going on with you?â
ânothing, lando. tired, busy, the usual. nothing crazy.â you attempt to shrug him off, but apparently heâs not done with you.
âthen why canât you look at me? did i do something?â he chokes out a laugh, a revelation of how uncomfortable he is.
you brave the sight of him, turning slowly until youâre face to face. he looks beautiful, freshly shaved, curls tamed back but not enough to stop them from hanging over his forehead to frame his face. just the way you like them.
âsee? nothing wrong.â you smile tightly, wondering if he can see the effort it takes to make your face move for him, if he can see the tension coursing through your veins like electricity. he seems to scan your face, taking his time, before he sighs, hums like heâs finally satisfied.
âso youâve been busy?â lando asks, trying to revert to your status quo, but you canât bare the agony of pretending. âhardly seen you since, uh, abu dhabi.â
âyep.â you quip, disappear into the kitchen just as you hear maxâs keys in the front door.
-
a few hours later everyoneâs had too much to drink, and the party is in full swing. landoâs persisted more than you thought heâd bother to, and youâve managed to exchange sentences made up of more than three words apiece. youâve left your circle to get a drink, about to slip into the kitchen, but hushed whispers stop you from entering.
your blood runs cold when you realise that one set of frantic whispers belong to lando, the other to max. you feel that you should leave, come back when itâs all clear but something tugs on your heartstrings and ties you to the threshold of the room. maybe itâs the possibility for closure, or worse, hope.
âmate you called me basically crying, telling me how in love with her you are, and when she gets there, youâre fucking someone else! what the fuck do you want from her, man?â max spits.
âhow the fuck was i supposed to know she was gonna show up?â lando retorts, an edge of desperation in his voice.
âthe real question is: why would you sleep with someone if you feel that way about her? why are you fucking around? why are you with casey?â
âbecause i was hurt, max! sheâs been going on all these dates, talking about guys sheâs seeing and, what, iâm supposed to put my life on hold waiting for her to love me back? i canât do it anymore. i canât.â landoâs voice cracks at the end and you lean into the wall, unable to feel your legs.
âyou could have told her, you idiot.â max is having none of the pity party, it seems, finally ready to knock some sense into your mutual best friend.
âand ruin everything? she clearly didnât want to be with me.â lando argues. max sighs.
âif you actually think that, then youâre a lost cause, mate.â you hear what you assume is. sympathetic slap on the back.
âiâm doing fine with casey, iâm finally getting somewhere. jesus, i havenât even slept with her yet.â lando whines. your heart stops on the other side of the door.
âso, itâs serious then? you and casey?â max asks, skeptical.
âit could be.â lando admits.
you put yourself out of your misery, loudly opening the door to the kitchen. you act aloof, surprised to see them, but the crease in your forehead is all max needs to see. he knows you heard at least some of it. fifteen years of friendship with him means he can read you like a book. fifteen years of friendship with lando has done nothing but break your heart.
âsorry, guys, didnât know you were in here.â you feign nonchalance. âjust need a drink.â you slide past lando, watching the way his back ripples with tension at the slight brush of your body against his. you let out a deflated breath, wrapping your hand around a cold can of god knows what. all you know is you need a drink, and you need to get out of this fucking kitchen.
you find pietra on the makeshift dance floor, join her and your friends to spin and twirl and forget about the man whoâs stood in the corner doing nothing but watch you.
-
a week passes. landoâs wine drunk. youâre laying across one of his sofas, sharing with him, and max and p sit on the other sofa. youâre all giggling about nothing in particular, latest gossip, old anecdotes, random shit that no oneâs sober enough to not laugh at. it feels like balance is being slowly restored, like the good old days before it all went sour.
âstill canât believe you did a whole lap of the ski lodge naked.â you tease lando, smirking at him from your end of the sofa. you nudge his thigh with your foot, and he grabs your ankle, thumbing over the sensitive skin.
âa dare is a dare.â he replies, grinning back at you, his gaze lingering even when max interjects.
âagain, mate, no one fucking dared you to do that.â max shouts, and you all descend into laughter again.
âi did not need to see some of the things i saw that night.â p grimaces playfully, and you canât help but flush at the memory of landoâs bare ass disappearing into the snow.
âagreed.â you say, drawing landoâs eyes back onto you.
âyou know you loved it.â he raises an eyebrow at you, and you stare bashfully into the wine glass in your hand. you feel his hand squeeze, nails ghosting above your ankle, making you shiver.
âgot an early morning tomorrow, fuck.â max groans. âbetter get going.â
you hug him and p goodbye, graciously offering to help lando tidy up a little as the couple leaves the driverâs london apartment for their own.
youâre carrying empty glasses into the kitchen when you spot it, and it stops you dead in your tracks. the same handbag that casey had carried into that bathroom all those weeks ago. your skin tingles, a phantom touch making you burn.
âso you and, uh, casey are getting serious, huh?â you mumble, finally making it into the open plan kitchen.
lando stands on the opposite side of the marble counter, a tea towel slung over his shoulder, disgustingly domestic.
for her, though. never for you.
ânot sure.â he responds flippantly.
âmust be, canât remember the last time you kept a girl around this long.â your attempt at a joke falls flat, even though heâs still tipsy, flushed with alcohol.
âsâthat supposed to mean?â lando asks, boyish and defensive.
ânothing, just⊠you havenât really seemed in a relationship-y place.â you remark, trying to appear casual as you place the glasses on the countertop.
âi wasnât but i realised i needed to get my shit together. havenât even-â he starts, but cuts himself off abruptly.
âhavenât what?â you press, finding a cloth to wipe the marble clean.
âdonât wanna make things weird by telling you that kinda stuff.â
âlando, you called me when you lost your virginity and couldnât find your way out of her apartment building. commando. you can tell me.â you deadpan.
as much as you could do without a play by play of his newfound relationship and changed ways, heâs your friend first, and he seems like he needs a shoulder. it would be careless, cruel, even, to deny him of that.
âwell, we havenât, uh, you know.â he looks at you intensely.
âoh. still?â
lando looks at you strangely, wondering what on earth you mean by that, but you swoop in with a get out of jail card that stops him from figuring out youâd eavesdropped.
âi mean, havenât you guys been together for like a month?â you continue.
âyeah but i guess i figured i should take it slower, deviate from my, uh, usual way.â he admits, scratching his neck.
âoh, thatâs⊠nice.â
ânot according to casey.â he mutters, slinging the tea towel across the counter, frustrated.
âwhatâs that supposed to mean?â you enquire, avoiding eye contact.
âi donât know, sheâs just⊠she wants it and, fuck, i was trying to be a good fucking guy for once.â lando sighs, disheartened. his eyes are trained on you but you canât meet his gaze, it would destroy you. âi spent so much time unhappy, wanting something i canât have, so now i just⊠what would,â he inhales sharply, centring himself. âwhat would you want?â
âhuh?â you squeak, daring to look at him. the room fades away in the intensity of his stare, his eyes boring into yours. the counter that separates you grounds you, stops you from dropping to your knees and begging him to love you.
âwhat would you want? how would you want that to be, your first time with someone?â
you stop breathing, curling your fingers around the cool marble.
âi⊠i donât know.â you whisper.
âsorry, i knew this would be weird.â he rushes out.
âno, itâs not! well, yeah it is, but,â you inhale deeply. âif it were me, i guess iâd want you to⊠catch me off guard.â you murmur, leaning against the counter, the swirled marble cool against the bare sliver of skin that your ridden up t shirt exposes. âyou know, with a really good kiss - soft at first, but the kind that⊠as it gets deeper, you know something so good is about to happen.â
lando stares at you, mouth hanging open as you speak softly, so earnestly, into the empty space between you. it seems like a million miles keeps you apart, and his eyes go wild, hungry, like he wants to crawl over the surface and pin you to it as he hangs on to your every word.
âi donât really know,â you continue, trying to brush it all off, pretend that your entire body isnât on fire, like youâre not itching for something that cannot be scratched. âbut i suppose youâd pull me close, so iâm pressed up against you, and then it would get kind of sweaty, blurry⊠and then itâs just happening.â
lando seems to be bracing himself, holding position, a tension running through his body that wasnât there before. heâs flushed, and if you squint, thereâs a bead of sweat slowly dripping down his forehead, giving him away. your nails dig into your palms, a reboot to your system, and you shuffle backwards awkwardly, recoiling from the counter that keeps you from him.
âokay. uh, okay.â he whispers, nodding rapidly. âiâll keep that it mind.â
âiâll put the glasses away in the dining room.â you tell him hurriedly, grabbing the stems and hurtling out of the kitchen. when you reach his dining room, where the air seems to be much thinner, normal, you exhale shakily and book an uber.
âthought you would stay here.â lando strains when you tell him, watching you shrug your coat on.
âcanât tonight.â you reply, clipped.
âcan we⊠can we get dinner this week maybe? just us?â lando pleads, doesnât even try to hide the desperation in his voice.
âlando⊠i donât think thatâs a good idea.â you finally give up the ghost, looking him right in the eyes.
âwhy not?â
âyou know why.â
he breathes your name, takes a step closer to you as you take a step back.
âno, i really donât. why have you been so distant? i know what you saw in abu dhabi was weird but-â
âdo you know why it was weird, lando? do you know how that made me feel?â
âno, because you havenât said anything. tonight was the first night in months that youâve seemed okay and now youâre being off again.â
âimagine finally thinking that the guy youâre in love with finally feels the same, only to walk in on him fucking some random person.â you bellow, tears slipping over your waterline. you breathe heavily, the admission taking tons off of your shoulders.
âwhat?â he gasps, jaw going slack.
âforget it.â you mumble, backing away towards the door. you canât believe the relief you feel, exhausted from the pretending. you canât even bring yourself to care about the repercussions.
âno, i- what the fuck did you just say?â landoâs eyebrows are drawn together tight, confused.
âyou heard me.â your words are hushed, shy, laced with a tremble that makes his chest ache.
âi didnât know.â is all he can say, staring at you with a desperation that makes you want to stay. you know better.
âit doesnât matter now. you said yourself, you wanna be happy with her. so do it, go be happy with her.â you tell him, your lack of malice astounding.
âwhy canât you fight for us?â he whispers, finally dares to go there.
âi did. abu dhabi. that was me fighting for you.â you scoff at his audacity. âwhy canât you fight for us?â
âi didnât know.â he repeats, voice going up an octave with annoyance. âimagine watching the girl youâve been in love with for years go on dates, listen to her talk about the guys sheâs seeing.â he hits back.
âmaybe weâve both made mistakes, lando, but i tried to put myself out there and got hurt. why would i do that to myself again?â you retort, crossing your arms over your chest protectively. your heart pounds in your chest, flustered at his admission, as much as you try and hide it from him. it hits different to hear him say it to your face; it didnât cut as deep when youâd heard it lingering outside maxâs kitchen.
âif i thought for a second that you felt how i felt - how i still feel - none of this would have happened, abu dhabi, casey, none of it.â
âbut now youâre with her and, great, thatâs fine, iâm just not sure how to be your friend right now.â
âno, no, weâre not throwing that away. even if we canât be together,â you both visibly deflate at the word. âi know itâs so fucking selfish but i canât lose you like that too.â
âgive me a reason, lando. because right now? youâve already lost me.â
when you get into the uber, youâre sobbing, and youâre sure the poor man that had the misfortune of picking you up understands when he turns the radio up - taylor swift is playing - and smiles at you sadly.
-
heâs spinning aimlessly in his gaming chair when max finds him.
âwhat the actual fuck is wrong with you?â is all max has to say, looming in the doorway to landoâs office.
âwhat happened to a simple âhelloâ?â lando grumbles.
âyouâll get a simple hello when you stop being a dick.â max replies, matter of fact.
lando laughs bitterly in response.
âjust tell me one thing. one thing that makes no fucking sense to me. why are you still with casey?â
âi donât know if i ever really was.â lando observes, eyes vacant and tired. âshe was a distraction and iâm an asshole.â
âwell, at least you know.â max mutters under his breath. lando canât even muster a glare his best friends way.
âi ended it about an hour ago.â lando starts. âshe told me that she was gonna go public, call me a cheater, say that i used her as a pawn. donât even get me started on what she was gonna say aboutâŠâ lando trails off, canât even say your name. he feels like he doesnât deserve to.
âfuck.â max sighs, finally walking into the room. he takes a seat on the small sofa. âwhat are you gonna do?â
âspoke to my team. theyâll deal with her. told me that they all deserve a pay rise and i donât disagree.â
âand what aboutâŠâ max echos his friend, trailing off. he leans forward with anticipation.
âi donât know, man. i love her but i know i donât deserve her, not after all this. she deserves to be happy and all i seem to do is make her miserable.â
âmate, she wasnât miserable because you were just friends. she was miserable because you were ignoring her, choosing randoms over her. you know that, right?â max says, finally something resembling gentle in his tone.
âif i couldnât even be a good friend, how the fuck am i gonna be a good boyfriend?â
âfigure it out, you knob. all this feeling sorry for yourself isnât working out. be honest with her for once, tell her how you feel. itâs not rocket science, lando. she loves you more than you deserve, so pull yourself together and fucking show her that she is everything to you.â
-
the next week is spent working far too hard and sleeping far too little.
you donât hear from him, and he doesnât hear from you, but itâs how it should be. if thereâs no distance, youâd have a whole set of problems on your hands, forced on you by a can of worms that needed to stay sealed. itâs better this way, you relentlessly tell yourself.
max and p bring you dinner the night things change.
âyou sure i canât convince you to come work at quadrant?â max prods, taking in the ridiculous amount of papers and spreadsheets that have taken over your living room. âwouldnât be as intense as this.â
âfor so many reasons: no.â you shoot him a look, one that says leave it alone. he nods, gets the hint, and drops onto the scrap of sofa that isnât covered in paperwork.
âyouâve been sleeping though, yes?â pietra asks, eyebrows raised with concern. she knows how you get.
you hum in acknowledgment, avoiding eye contact as you plate the food theyâve brought. p sighs.
âhave you spoken to him?â max finally asks, and you know itâs taken everything in him to not ask, in the short five minutes heâs been in your flat.
âmax!â pietra hisses, and he raises his hands in surrender.
âcâmon, you knew iâd have to ask, especially considering heâs been a little bitch all week.â max defends.
âi havenât. told him i needed space.â you shrug.
âhowâs that working out for you?â max gestures to the mess that engulfs the room, swallows it whole. again, you shrug.
âfine.â you stress, digging in to the chinese food. max scoffs and you snort with a mouthful of noodles when pietra glares at him.
âwell, heâs miserable, and youâre behaving like someone whoâs gonna end up on a true crime documentary, so sue me for asking.â he scolds sarcastically.
âokay, you want the tea?â you roll your eyes. âhe told me they hadnât had sex. i gave him advice - against the better judgment of literally anyone ever, by the way - tried to leave and he fucking ambushed me. wanted to have dinner with me, as if he hasnât been pushing me away for months, and then had the fucking audacity, max, to ask me why i wonât fight for us, for him - oh! and he still has a girlfriend! so, you know what, you got me, iâm not doing so great but,â you choke out a laugh, opening the box of prawn toast. âtoo fucking bad.â
âi promise you, this will pass and casey will be gone and then-â
âand then me and lando can go back to pretending and avoiding and hurting each other. canât wait.â
max shakes his head in defeat, knows he has to let lando fix this himself. he has no chance of winning this one with you.
âeat your noodles.â is all he has left. pietra disappears into your kitchen, and returns with a bottle of wine.
you eat together, put on netflix, slumped into the sofa as you try and relax. youâre halfway through your first drink when your phone buzzes. assuming itâs your overbearing boss, who apparently doesnât sleep either, you pick it up and quickly wish you hadnât.
lando: can you come over
like now
if you can
please. please please please please
we broke up.
âholy shit.â
you sit up suddenly, scan the room for your bag and a jacket. you donât care that youâre in old sweats, you just feel the need to move, to get to him before common sense kicks in.
âyou good?â max asks.
âuh, i need to go, like right now. stay and finish the wine if you want, but i just need to go to-â
âlando?â max and p ask simultaneously, and you burn with embarrassment.
âi canât even try and lie to you right now. is this pathetic?â you question.
âno! go!â max shouts, exasperated, standing to usher you out of your own apartment.
-
twenty minutes later, you knock on his door.
when it opens, heâs disheveled in a way that makes you hug him immediately, his touch disturbingly foreign, and you feel him sink into your hold. he pulls you inside, kicks the door shut, and doesnât let you go.
âsofa?â you murmur into his hoodie. you feel him nod, and you part, pad towards the lounge as you shrug off your jacket.
âhi.â he says tiredly, as soon as youâre both sat.
âhey.â you coo back. your eyebrows are drawn together as you take him in, concern woven through your features. âsorry about casey.â lando scoffs.
âdonât be, donât even know what i was thinking.â
âwell, neither do i,â you retort. âbut iâm still sorry. did it happen just before you texted?â you ask.
âno, a week ago.â
âa week ago?â you gasp. âbut that would meanâŠâ
âyeah. right after you left here. asked her to come over and ended it. she told me she was gonna go to the media with a whole load of shit, so iâve been sorting things out.â
âiâm so sorry.â you whisper.
lando laughs.
âyouâre sorry? god, youâre way too fucking good for me.â he scoffs, bitter with self deprecation. âi canât believe you even came, to be honest.â
âcourse i came. i might be angry at you, but you- you wanted me to, soâŠâ
âi donât even know where to start. iâm just so sorry about the last few months. i thought i was losing you and it drove me insane, but i should have never, ever taken my shit out on you.â
âwhat do you mean? losing me?â
âthe dates, the guys. god, it was awful of me but it killed me.â
âthat was only because i didnât think i had a chance.â
âwell, if it makes you feel any better, i didnât think i had a chance either.â he laughs. âso what you said about abu dhabi⊠was that why you came? to tell me?â
âyeah, kinda. after some⊠encouragement from a mutual friend, i was gonna tell you that i wanted us to be more.â
lando shifts closer, your thighs pressing together. you can feel his body heat, so warm and inviting, drawing you closer.
âmore.â lando repeats, tasting it on his tongue, the weight of everything heâs ever wanted since he was sixteen and fell in love for the first time.
âyeah, and then it seemed like you didnât want that.â
âyou must know by now that i also want more.â he murmurs, fingertips brushing your forearm. you keen into the barely there touch that traces over your skin.
âiâd say thatâs been implied, yeah.â you joke, searching his eyes. theyâre hooded, swirling with an intensity that you never thought youâd experience with another person. âum, i heard you and max. the night of pietraâs birthday.â you admit.
âfuck,â he sighs, shoulders sagging. âiâm so sorry, i swear, i never meant to put you through any of this. âm so, so sorry.â
âi know you are.â you whisper, loaded with a sincerity that only you could give him. âbut you can never, ever treat me like this lando. i mean it.â
âi need you to know that i never meant to hurt you.â he swallows down a lump in his throat, voice wobbling just enough for you to notice.
âi do, lando.â you grab his hand, squeeze it tight.
âwhat do you want from me now? anything you want, i promise - iâm yours.â
âi want us to try, to see where this goes. i think we owe it to ourselves to see.â
âi never thought iâd ever get a chance with you.â lando laughs softly, the hand on your arm travelling to ghost over your cheek.
âwhy?â
âbecause i donât think thereâs anyone on this planet thatâs good enough for you.â he confesses, leaning in until your foreheads touch.
âi donât think thatâs true, at least not where youâre concerned.â you breathe.
âhow are you real?â itâs barely a whisper, barely audible, but it hits your ears like an alarm.
âdonât go all existential on me now.â
âthen what should i do?â
âkiss me.â
âdoesnât that go against your whole âcatch me off guardâ philosophy?â he murmurs, one hand reaching up to cup your jaw. your foreheads are still pressed together, eyes roaming each others.
âyouâll have plenty of time to surprise me.â you whisper.
you take a second to admire one another, the proximity mingling your warm breaths. when your lips finally brush, itâs slow, tentative, silent exploration. he tilts your head so that he can kiss you deeper, fingers sliding from your cheek into your hair. you emit a quiet moan, open up for him so he can taste you, and the feeling of him licking into your mouth sends your mind utterly blank.
heâs all consuming, totally intoxicating, a fresh blend of mint and something so blatantly lando that you feel like youâre floating. you find his neck, threading your fingers through the short strands at the nape of his neck. you hear something from deep in his chest, feel the vibrations of the low rumble as he presses you even closer to him.
when you inevitably break apart for air, he looks dazed, grinning like a fool as he smoothes his hand through the loose strands of your hair that fall around your face.
âiâm sorry that took so long.â lando hums, leaning in to peck your lips again. you canât help but smile into it, in a daze of your own.
âme too.â you manage between smiling dopily up at him.
âyouâre so beautiful.â he coos, still entranced. âyou wanna stay here tonight?â
you hesitate for a second. he notices, interlacing your fingers with his.
âfor the record, um, she never did. i couldnât have her that close.â he mumbles, looking down at your hands guiltily.
âwhy?â
âdidnât feel right. she wasnât,â he inhales shakily and meets your gaze again, piercing you with hazy blue hues. âshe wasnât you. i think thatâs the real reason that i couldnât⊠you know, with her.â
âiâll stay.â you whisper, nodding softly. itâs all you can formulate as a response.
âi can make up the guest room.â he says wearily, posing it as more of a question than a statement, putting out the feelers. you scowl, eyes sparkling with a mischievous danger that leaves landoâs mouth bone dry.
âdonât bother.â
-
the grey linen of his bed sheets are soft against your skin as you sink into his mattress, watching intently as he pads around his room. you can smell him everywhere, a tangy, fresh musk that you want to bottle up and keep forever. lando glows in the dim, warm light of his bedroom and you feel a pang of regret that itâs taken this long to get here, muddled with a sense of relief that finally, youâve made it.
ââm gonna take a quick shower, okay? make yourself comfortable.â lando says, pauses for a second to take in the sight of you in his bed.
âokay.â you smile softly, eyes heavy with sleep as you relax further into the cushions. you hear the water running, white noise that allows your thoughts to run wild. the slide of the shower door grabs your attention and you think of him under the spray of water, bronze skin damp, hair slicked back.
when will it be your turn to see him like that, you wonder, musings of him pressed against you, bare and firm, flitting through your wandering mind. you realise, then, that you have him; heâs yours. why delay the inevitable?
slowly, you rise from the mattress, breathing shakily as your shirt comes off. your sweats follow, a trail of your clothes leading to the en-suite door. you can hear him humming to himself, the echo barrelling through your shaking body. youâre frantic with tension, a tinge of embarrassment, but then you consider his beautiful words, his confessions of love, and banish the feeling of shame that threatens to ruin you before youâve even started. you unhook your bra, shimmy out of your panties, and grip the door handle. it turns slowly, steam spilling out of the room immediately, yet you shiver with anticipation.
âroom for one more?â you call, and he jumps, turning suddenly.
you canât make him out clearly, the fog painted across the shower door concealing his lean frame, and it draws you in closer, anticipation swirling in your belly.
he responds by sliding the door open, and you join him under the hot water. his eyes stay firmly on yours, body opening up to invite you in, hold you close as the spray hits you. the heat loosens your muscles, and you sink into him.
âfuck.â you hear him whisper, more to himself than to you.
âhi.â you breathe.
âam i dreaming?â lando blinks, a slow smile spreading across his face as he not so subtlety rakes his eyes over your frame.
âno,â you purr. âiâm real. this is real.â
his hands find your waist and you loop your arms around his neck, the kiss he pulls you into heated with a slow burning passion that makes you ache.
âyouâre so pretty.â he pants into your mouth, firm and desperate - so sincere that it shakes you to your core.
âyouâre perfect.â you choke out, mesmerised, alight in his thick hands.
âlet me show you,â he starts, pauses briefly to kiss you. âwanna worship you.â
his words make you chase him for a kiss that doesnât come. instead, he turns you to face away from him, your back to his front. you feel the cool spread of shower gel against your back, calloused hands working it into your skin gently. your hair, heavy with water, is pushed over your shoulder and you turn your head just enough to find his lips. your mouths move with intent as he works the soap down your back and over your waist. it tickles and you keen into him, enough that he holds you tighter, angles your hips away from his.
âcareful, baby.â he warns lowly, his lips brushing over the shell of your ear.
âdonât wanna be careful.â you half moan, but he grips your hips even harder.
ânot tonight, yeah? let me look after you. need you to know that iâm serious about this.â lando pants, his self restraint thin as it hits your ears. you smirk.
âyou back on your âgood guyâ bullshit?â you tease, throwing him a look over your shoulder. you catch sight of his lip caught between his teeth, wet curls matted against his forehead, and a wave of pure need washes over your body.
âfor you? fuck yeah.â he manages, crouches down to lather soap down your legs. his hands roam your inner thighs, dangerously, painfully close to where you really need him to touch you, and you groan defeatedly.
âyouâre horrible.â you sigh when heâs back to his full height, facing you once more. he flashes you a cheeky smile, fingertips smoothing over your arms.
âwanna get this right.â he shrugs.
âwe could get it right - right here, right now.â you pout.
âpatience.â lando cautions, rubbing over your sternum. he grazes over the underside of your breasts, daring to go even higher. you let out a broken sigh, shuddering at his incessant attention.
âasshole.â
âwe already knew that about me, baby.â he winks. he maintains eye contact as he cups your breasts, massages them just enough to leave you wanting. his touch vanishes, then, and the elastic band of tension seems to snap. ârinse off, iâll leave a towel for you.â
just like that, heâs gone.
-
you stretch like a cat across the mattress, the low sun sending the early light streaming through a devastating crack in the curtains. it leaves you disoriented - the sun never hits your own bedroom like that.
quickly, you remember youâre not in your own bed, partly because of the heavy arm that sprawls over your tired body, pinning you to the mattress. his breath hits your bare shoulder in heavy puffs that warm your skin, leaving your tingling as your curl further into the curve of his body. your movements nudge his head into the crook of your neck, his nose bumping the sensitive skin there and he stirs slightly, puckers his lips into a gentle kiss at the base of your throat.
you roll over, his arm weighing heavy against the curve of your waist the whole time. when youâre face to face, his eyes are still closed, unfairly long eyelashes dusting his cheekbones, but a smile is painted languidly across his lips. he looks so soft, boyish, perfectly unreal that you snuggle closer to him.
âgo back to sleep.â he groans, hardly opening his mouth as if itâs too much work in his cosy state.
ânot tired anymore.â you whisper into the slight space still left between you. your lips find his jaw, trailing across it until you find a sensitive spot just below his ear. he shivers, but he still doesnât open his eyes. you smirk, tracing your tongue carefully over the definition of his jawline. you suck, bite down gently.
âreally?â he murmurs, still smiling like a fool, only intensified by your movements. you hum in response.
âgo back to sleep, baby.â you coo, sealing the hickey youâve left with a delicate kiss, one that contradicts the harsh mark youâve left.
âdrives me insane hearing you call me that.â he sighs, almost pained. the newfound friction against your thigh explains why.
âdoes it, baby?â you murmur, right in his ear.
âroll over, honey. get comfortable for me.â is all he says in return. electricity shoots down your spine as you oblige, resuming your previous position.
âthatâs it, câmere.â lando rasps, sliding impossibly closer. you can feel the full length of his body pressed against yours, heat seeping from his bronze skin onto yours. your eyes flutter shut, a delicious buzz coursing through you as the anticipation grows.
you can feel where heâs hard, solid against the curve of your ass and you keen into him, arched into his front as much as you possibly can be. your thighs clench together, liquid heat pooling between them. your mouth hangs open as his hand grazes the outside of your thigh, smoothing over the thickness of them before he pulls them apart. his hand slots between them - a perfect fit - and he wastes no time grazing his knuckles over the damp cloth of your panties.
âlando.â you sigh, utterly content. itâs been a long time coming, but it already seems like it was worth the wait.
âyouâre so wet for me already. you want me?â lando growls against the shell shell of your ear.
âtouch me, baby.â you plead, pressing your ass harder against him. he hisses, thumbs hard at your clit in response.
you mewl, squeezing your thighs around his hand but he forces them apart, his arm tensing as he does. you grip it hard, nails digging into his forearm but he doesnât relent. he rubs firm circles into the bundle of nerves over your panties, fingers dipping down to press into the wet patch quickly pooling in the lace.
âtake them off.â you urge.
he quickly complies, fingertips grazing your hips as he slides the material off of your frame. as one hand settles back between your thighs, two deft fingers pinching your clit, his other snakes under the old mclaren t-shirt heâd leant you. he traces the pudges of your belly, scaling up, up, up, tickling across your ribs until he caresses the curve of your breast, his whole hand engulfing it. he plucks a nipple between his fingers at the same time he slides a digit between your folds, spreading your wetness around.
âfeeling good for me, honey? do you know how sexy you are for me, making a mess, wearing my shirt?â lando muses, dangerously low. his voice is strained, a side affect of the hold your have on him, of how entranced he is by the way you writhe against him.
âso good.â you choke, rolling your hips to meet his hand. âneed more.â
âmore? is my girl greedy?â he taunts, circling your entrance with the tip of his finger.
âplease?â youâre not above begging him. it does the trick.
you both moan at the way he stretches you around one finger, the single digit sliding deep. he grinds it into you, palm nudging against your clit with every move he makes. one finger becomes two and you gasp out his name, your hand finding his under the shirt, holding it to your chest. he squeezes your flesh, tweaking at your nipple until itâs hard between his fingers and your ass is grinding faster into his crotch. when he moves on to your other breast, you choke out a moan that tears through the both of you, the tension so thick in the room that itâs stifling.
âcâmon baby, i need you inside of me.â you beg, your voice a pathetic garbled whine, one that makes him falter and suck in a harsh breath.
ânot sure you can take it, pretty girl. so tight just around my fingers.â lando challenges, slowing his fingers so that you can hear exactly what heâs doing to you. he curls them with every thrust, reaching a spot that temporarily leaves you blinded in the throes of his searing touch. âyouâre gonna cum for me like this first, yeah? and then weâll see if you can take me.â
âcanât- lando please just-â
he shushes you.
âyouâre gonna let me give it to you, honey. youâre gonna take it all, because youâre a good girl, right?â his voice is so condescending, so commanding that it makes you throb around him, his fingers flexing harder and faster as he senses your lurking orgasm. âthatâs it, honey, i can feel you. come on.â he urges.
your body spasms hard against his as it hits, any semblance of sleep shaken out of you as you fall apart. he holds you close, rides you through it - palm flat on your overstimulated clit while his fingers gently coax you over the edge. heâs hitting every spot, toying with every piece of you he can get his hands on. the hand alternating between your tits roams up to your neck squeezing briefly, just to tease, before he cups your jaw, turning your head enough so he can capture your lips in a feral kiss. itâs needy, full of greed as he swallows your cries of pleasure, keeps them all for himself.
when you go limp against him, the coils of tension finally loosening, he slips his fingers out slowly. youâre panting against his chest, descending back to reality, when you hear the telltale hum, a soft pop - heâs sucking his fingers clean.
âtaste so fucking good.â he finally speaks, slick fingers pushing your shirt up your body and you manoeuvre it over your head. itâs tossed away, lost to the shadowy room.
âlando,â you hum. âiâm ready.â
itâs a plea that he canât ignore, the duvet rustling around you. you feel him kick off his boxers and then heâs pressing his cock against the curve of your ass once more. its big, leaking already, and your mind goes completely and utterly blank.
âyou feel so good against me.â he notes, dazed at the sensation of your bare flesh warm against his. âyou sure?â he mumbles, pressing a firm kiss against the base of your neck, his hands working to reposition your legs so that he can slip into you.
ânever been more sure in my life.â you promise, tingling with the anticipation.
heâs so close that you can feel the pulsing heat of him between your parted thighs. the head of him nudges over your clit and he drags himself up and down, coating his cock with your wetness. youâre frustrated - ready to flip the two of you over, fuck yourself full, but he beats you to it. the stretch of him makes you gasp, knuckles white as you grip the soft bedding. when his hips meet yours, he pauses, teeth sinking into your shoulder, utterly overwhelmed. youâre not doing much better, one hand snaking up behind you to find his curls, tugging softly on the messy strands. he likes it, groaning into the marks heâs leaving on your shoulder, lips trailing messily up your neck.
the sunlight streams harshly through the crack in the curtain, momentarily blinding you. it leaves you with only the feeling of him, a golden haze invading your other senses. heâs gripping your hip so hard that youâre certain that youâll be able to map out each of his fingerprints after.
âcan i move?â he rasps, punctuating his request with a delicate kiss just below your ear. you shiver, clenching around him tight, and he bucks into you inadvertently. it sends sparks shooting up and down your spine, an electric wave of pleasure that has your eyes fluttering shut.
âyou better.â you implore.
âyouâre fucking perfect around me.â he grunts, beginning to build a rhythm. itâs one that leaves you both breathless, brainless, unable to utter anything besides the relentless chants of each-others names, the needy wanton moans that neither of you can hide.
landoâs hands are everywhere, your hips, your ass, wrapped around your sternum to pull you back into him, plunging himself even deeper into you. you claw blindly at any part of him you can reach, braindead from the way heâs fucking you. you and him are like a tidal wave, surging closer and closer to shore after years of dormancy, of an aching, crushing build up. now, as it peaks, it could destroy you, wash you away and leaves you nothing. you know he wonât. you know by the way heâs holding you, by the soft whimpers he lets you hear, by the way he makes you feel more alive than you have in months.
âiâm so close.â your voice quivers, pleasure bleeding into the edges of your words.
âiâm gonna get you there, pretty girl. youâre so good for me.â he promises, one hand slipping between your thighs. he finds your clit, plays with it between his fingers. messy swirls combined with precise flicks make you shake âi can feel you, honey. can feel you holding back. let it all out for me.â
he sounds wrecked, like heâll die if he canât feel you let go around him. you feel the start of your orgasm crawling from the tips of your toes, up your legs, and into the fire pit of your belly.
âthatâs it, give it to me.â lando whispers, his voice so far away, even though heâs right there, talking you through it with his lips pressing the shell of your ear.
âi love you, lando.â
with that, you shatter into a million pieces, convulsing around him, against him, trying to get impossibly closer to him as you simultaneously try and squirm away. he holds you close, barrelling into you with fast, deep rolls of his hips. each thrust taps into your special spot, stars clouding your vision, his name the only word on your lips, the only word that has ever existed.
âwhere do you want it?â he asks quickly, urgently anticipating his own end.
âinside of me.â you pant, delirious, but heâs not in the space to do any critical thinking - you love him! - so he takes your words at face value.
a guttural groan hits your ears like a sonic boom, his body tight and firm against your sweat slick back. he squeezes you tight as he fills you up, submitting totally to the heat of your core, to the intoxicating way you draw him in.
âi love you, too.â he mumbles into your shoulder, kisses the words into your flushed skin. âi always have.â
he flops onto his back, slipping out of you carefully first, a lazy smile on his face. his eyes are shut, angelic once more as if he hadnât been whispering filth into your ear just a minute prior.
âwe gotta do more of that.â lando laughs, blindly reaching out for you. you slip into his welcoming arms, draping yourself over his body.
âthink i need a shower. maybe you can make up for leaving me in there last night.â you giggle, agreeing that, yes, you absolutely need to do more of that.
he hugs you closer, a kiss placed atop your forehead.
âyou can have anything you want, honey.â
-
phew.
-
taglist.
@mcmuppet @japanesekel @vinvantae @ggaslyp1 @dr3lover @smiithys  @rachstash @infinitebells @fizzpopsnap101 @gaily19 @icecoldtires @mysticalnightenthusiast @thatchickwiththecamera @oyesmendes @disneydaydreameralways @canyouseethesainz @ferrarifwendvale @fcbformulaeri @tony-stank3 @maih23 @soleilgrec @carolineworld @anthonykatebridgerton @allywthsr @iamasimpingh0e @ophcelia @coffeehurricanes @jennx03 @blueflorals @sidcrosbyspuck @better-dead-than-smeg @buendiabebeta @pjofics @kovalcin @wintergilmore3 @for-writing-shit @youdontknowmeshh @im-an-overthinker @jule239 @darleneslane @jazzy722 @weasleyswizarding-wheezes @therealone4r @pleasecallmeunhinged @theonlyadrienne @formulaal @carlandoxlestappen @cmleitora @pianor481 @costkappen
#lando norris fic#lando norris#lando norris smut#lando norris fluff#lando norris angst#lando norris x reader#lando norris x you#friends to lovers#smut#fluff#angst#f1 fic#f1 smut#f1 fluff#f1 driver x reader#f1 driver x you#f1 angst#formula 1 fic#formula 1 smut
2K notes
·
View notes
Text
higher power
pairing: jungkook x reader
wordcount: 11k
glimpse: waiting for jungkook to love again doesn't guarantee you a permanent romantic spot in his life, even if you've been in love with him the longest.
alternatively, you promised yourself to keep confessing to jungkook, your brother's best friend, every year until you turn twenty-eight.
[ fluff, angst, Drastic Yearning that it's painful to watch, tangled with the take five universe yippeeee, slippery slopes, mentions of cheating (there's none in actuality), jungkook's a bit mean :(, lots of self-deprecation n the concept of having to deserve love, mentions of surgery (appendectomy if we r being specific), homage to agust d's 28 (i fucking love u yoongi i miss u), arguments, redemption ]
notes: bring back men who YEARN!!! đđ
as always, lmk what you think <3 send in feedback n love to my askbox anytime!!
There's a step in your childhood home's staircase that Jungkook always trips on.
Your dad, and even your brother, Yoongi, repeatedly vow to fix it whenever they hear the all too familiar sound of Jungkook tripping on it. The way heâd wince because of it every single time is comedic, if not extremely endearing, because Jungkook would always clamp his hand down on his mouth as to not disturb anyone.
Doing his very best each time, Jungkook would have to clutch the banister as he waits for the pain to subside. He wants to groan loudly with everything that he has, but he canât risk putting your dad in trouble with your mom by yelling at him to stop hurting Jungkook from delaying the repair of the step.
He even wants to collapse in pain sometimes (Jungkookâs not joking when he says that he almost wiped out so hard to the point that he only saw white and started tasting colors), but he tries not to, because if he falls and makes a commotion, he knows youâd immediately stand up and forfeit the already limited computer-borrowing hours you have because of Yoongi.
âIâd fix the step for you, yâknow?â you mutter under your breath as you try to keep your laughter at bay, once again serving as the crutch to your brotherâs best friend whoâd completely entertain the possibility that your family has it out for him, if not for all the warmth that you give him. âIf only Yoongi would lend me his computer for more than an hour and I didnât have a ton of requirements, I could really hack it out with a single video.â
âOf course you will,â Jungkook snorts under his breath, his inability to feel embarrassment over being critically profiled by your one (1) wooden step (because heâs just gotten hurt so repeatedly that itâs nothing new for him) being overtaken by his raging ability to feel shy, just because it always has to be you to pick him up.
It canât be anyone else at this point.
It canât be your brother, because all Yoongi would do is attempt to fix the step with his stock knowledge (to which there is none), and Jungkook knows he would be in further danger if his friend takes a crack at it. It canât be your parents either, because your mom is a little too wired to the point that sheâd want to replace the whole staircase if she sees a mismatched, temporary fix, and your dad is a little too lax to the point that heâs the type to ask Jungkook what color he tastes as his version of a pain scale.
It has to be you, because although everyone in the house has seen Jungkook at his worst at all his various points of life, youâre yet to lose your faith in him.
Itâs not to say that your family has already lost respect for him (not even by a long shot), but Jungkook figures that it canât be that bad letting you in because amongst everyone, the lowest point you know him by is him just being extremely upset over his girlfriend breaking up with him and thatâs it.
While your parents know about him sleeping over in your house meant he fought with his very own and couldnât stand staying in his room for another second, or how Yoongi knows that Jungkookâs strapped for cash because the latter keeps pacing in their dorm trying to panic-clean as he waits for callbacks from part-time jobs he applied for â the only low that Jungkook lets you see is him being distraught over his first love.
Jungkook doesnât get idolized that much. Heâs not a prized son like how your brother is, and neither is he known in college for being smart. Heâs not actually a superlative like how he knows you think of him, and the realization of your crush on him makes Jungkook feel conflicted whether it rains or pours.
He doesnât like you like that, but thatâs never stopped you before.
You know about Sora and how first loves have this intoxicating, vice-like grip on everyone, along with the fact that even glancing at an upset Jungkook makes you upset, but thatâs never hindered you before.
He wants to let you down as gently as he could, because the last thing he ever wants to do is make his best friendâs sister develop a complex from being rejected. Jungkook knows heâs handsome (read: heâs attempting to be humble), and kind, and maybe even charming on a good day; above all, heâs realistic.
He doesnât want you to depend on himâ he thinks definitively as you glare at him through the rear-view mirror from the backseat, because you mistakenly assumed that the extra can of coffee in the cup holder was for you instead of Sora whom he was tasked to pick up right after you, and Yoongi had to correct you with a snicker.
Jungkook doesnât want you to depend on himâ he thinks hesitantly as he hears you shriek from the bottom of the staircase.
âShit! God, that fucking-âŠâ you seethe, attempting to keep yourself stable in all fours right after tripping on Jungkookâs cursed step. Itâs never hurt any of you before except him, and now that it finally does, you donât get how he couldâve kept quiet all this time.
Jungkook rushes down and Yoongi comes after, the latter cussing under his breath as he heads back to his room to retrieve his first-aid kit and (hopefully) patch you up with what heâs learning in pre-med.
âWhat happened? Donât tell me you were trying to break in your heels again,â Jungkook chastises you as he gets you to sit upright, the frustrated and pained tears cornering from your eyes immediately making him apologetic with his approach.
âI wasnât! You sound just like Yoongi,â you spit, keeping in a sniffle with your arms across your chest, looking away to hide your tears because you donât want Jungkook to see just how badly youâre torn over your ankles and knees burning.
He deflates at that, pinching his nosebridge as he tries to calm himself down with the sound of Yoongi bounding down the stairs with a first-aid kit and his notes like itâs some return-demonstration, except he can actually practice on you.
âIâm sorry. I just thought you were doing something-âŠâ Jungkook apologizes, the word stupid being cut off from his lips, not only because Yoongiâs shooing him away, but because he canât bring himself to stomach the gaze you have directed at him.
Jungkook does back away, with very little coaxing, as he disappears when Yoongi starts asking you if youâre in pain anywhere else with the most serious, professional voice youâve ever heard him pull.
While your brother fixes your ankle up at the bottom of the stairs, Jungkook soon appears behind you with your dadâs toolbox and the most unreadable look to his face.
While Yoongi dashes to his room again to look for his camera to take a picture of the work he did on your ankle alone so he can reference it later, Jungkook washes his hands in the kitchen sink before patting a damp, clean towel to your knees.
Jungkookâs not in pre-med, and he doesnât live in your house either.
What he is, is your brotherâs best friend whoâs extremely apologetic.
"Thanks. Love you," you mumble out of habit, meaning the words sincerely even if they leave your mouth every time someone does something remotely sweet towards you.
You still mean them nonetheless, and the prospect of repeating your sentiments doesnât seem so bad when itâs him.
Youâre eighteen when you first confess to Jungkook.
"I'm just patching your knee up...?" he trails off in confusion, later laughing when he finally sees the shake of your head that lets him know that you, too, felt embarrassed.
You still mean them regardless, even if you feel like taking them back.
Youâre eighteen when Jungkook fixes the step in the staircase of your childhood home, not because it always trips him, but because you did that one time.
( ⥠)
Jungkook has a habit of coming over unannounced.
In between all your parents' insisting that your house is also his for him to run to anytime, to your brother realizing that being friends with Jungkook meant having to see him in unhealthy doses because he has no other choice, Jungkook effectively integrated himself to the quilt of your life.
He's a lived-in, well-loved shirt that's cut up and fashioned into a granny square, along with a hundred other versions of him that you've had the privilege of seeing; it's actually ironic because Jungkook's left a lot of his items, of himself, both in your childhood house and your shared apartment with your brother, and he's never batted an eye once about their whereabouts.
Jungkook doesn't question why your parents posted a picture of your old beloved dog wearing a shirt of his from elementary to Facebook, but he does save the picture immediately and make it his wallpaper.
He doesn't question either why Yoongi's cap collection is growing and why he keeps insisting that he bought it himself (even if Jungkook can still place the faint smell of his shampoo on it), but he does make sure every now and then to actually gift him one in exchange for the uncountable favors your brother's done for him.
Most importantly, Jungkook doesn't question you either when he sees his hairtie on your wrist when you open the door for him.
He knows not to bring up anything about your crush over him (not unless it's you starting the conversation about Your Feelings For Him, which practically happens only once a year), or how he really hates it when his hairties go missing. Even Yoongi isn't spared from his annoyance, because in Jungkook's defense, your brother's too rich to go steal from the godsend, usually-expensive ten-pack that he managed to buy on sale.
Jungkook doesn't point out the red elastic on your wrist. He ignores the starry-gazed look you only have for him, except now, your eyes are only narrowed and hollow over his sudden appearance.
That's the only thing he can't shake off.
"Is your brother home?" he asks his original intention for his visit, shifting his weight from one foot to another because of the lackluster, blank gaze you have on that keeps piercing him. "You okay?"
"Won't be home for another hour."
Jungkook laughs at your curt reply, eyes widening in sarcasm as he shakes his head, the snort that leaves him catching him off-guard too. He canât place why heâs annoyed over the possibility of you being any less than delighted to see him, and truly, heâs trying not to sound like a narcissist; heâs only ever really cared about his image when you were concerned.
"That was a lot of attitude."
You and Jungkook don't really fight. You don't fight with each other because there's barely anything that you disagree about, but when you do fight with him (not if), it's unlike any of the fights you have with Yoongi.
You don't fight with Jungkook as if he's your brother, because he's not.
You don't fight with him either as if he's only your brother's friend, because you don't want him to be.
With Jungkook, there's guilt that settles in your bones when you don't reconcile before you go to sleep. There's an unspeakable force that actually makes you doubt yourself, when usually, you'd know to your gut that you were in the right every single time you fought with Yoongi.
With Jungkook, you don't get an unspoken promise that you'll just forget about whatever happened.
It's him, after all.
"Hey, woah. What's wrong with you?" Jungkook reacts with a frown when you refuse to grace him with a reply, following you into the apartment with a firm grasp on your forearm.
It's not the first time you've ever turned your back on because you didn't want to talk, and it's not the first time either that he's had to physically chase after you. Jungkook's been through this before: he's been through it as the occasional referee between you and Yoongi on your heated fights growing up. He knows how quickly you could shut yourself off, but he didn't know it would feel this weird being at the receiving end of it.
He didn't know it would feel this jarring.
"Nothing. Let me go," you mutter, jerking your arm away from him that only makes Jungkook huff.
He's supposed to be understanding, that much he knows. He's supposed to be the older, mature one between you both, but there's just something about you being short with him that makes Jungkook feel rewired, for better and for worse.
"So something is wrong with you," he insists, rolling his eyes when he follows you even into the kitchen, the two of you knowing well that you're just passively opening the fridge (and a hundred other cupboards) so you could lose him.
"Can you leave me alone?"
"You opened the door for me, sweetheart," Jungkook sarcastically hums, the smile on his face even more insufferable than your furrowed brows that have not loosened even once since seeing him.
"Because you're clearly here for Yoongi," you remind, the edge of your voice slamming harder than the last drawer against its base. Jungkook would wince about it if only he hadnât spent the better part of your entire interaction loathing the way you talk to him, making his ears ring.
"Can't I be here for you too?" he offers, the sincerity coming across as half-baked pity into your system.
Jungkook didn't even look sure with his own question.
The roll of your eyes makes Jungkook even more annoyed, his irritation bordering on anger that he can't even place. He didn't even get this worked up over his fights with your brother, and the two of them have even went so close as to getting physical multiple times.
"What was that for?"
"You're clearly lying," you mutter, settling for folding your clothes angrily right in front of him. Youâre not even fazed that youâre just three sleep shirts away from folding your own underwear in front of him because itâs the least of your concerns.
Now, the only thing you can think about is how Jungkookâs beyond clueless. For all you know, he doesnât even care about why youâre acting the way you were because simply (and realistically, in your case) put, Jungkook just wants you to remain the same. He just wants you to remain as the mainstay, familiar figure everywhere he goes who makes him feel better just by giving him a default, love-sick glance and nothing less.
Youâre not a dog waiting around for him by the front door.
You think youâre more of a mutt waiting to be seen at the porch when nobody else inside wants to do his tricks.
"What are we even talking about right now?" Jungkook nudges the laundry basket away with his foot, the scowl you give him making him shrink momentarily. "You're the one who's starting something and I literally just got here."
"I'm not starting anything."
"Then why won't you tell me what's wrong, huh?"
The simple and seemingly mundane question makes you dart up, unceremoniously dropping the same shirt youâve been pretending to fold in the neatest, tightest rectangle as possible.
You should be relieved at the prompt because it meant you didnât have to bring it up out of nowhere. You should be happy at the cue because whatever youâll answer, it would mean that Jungkook asked for it.
You should be anything but the way youâre feeling now with the words scratching your throat from the inside, because with your feelings out in the open (even more than what youâve already given time and time again), you feel even more tense.
"Why didn't you tell me you and Sora were back together?"
Jungkook expected everything but the simple, one-dimension question. He didnât anticipate for you to ask something that he could give you an answer to but refuse to. He just sits beside you, eerily still with the dumbest look on his face that keeps pleading you to just drop this even if you barely even started, his wide eyes blinking with confusion.
"I didn't-..." he clears his throat, looking down on his lap briefly because looking at you the whole time, as he composes his words, would mean his defeat. He didnât know exactly why or how heâd be losing by looking at you directly as he professes the truth, but all he knows for sure is that however he does it, youâd never be the winner. âI didn't think I had to tell you, Y/N," he laughs uneasily. "I know you're not exactly the biggest fan of her."
"Neither is Yoongi, but he still got to know," you chuckle dryly, the shrug of your shoulder being far too lax that it convinces neither of you that you were really okay with it.
"Because he's my best friend," Jungkook exasperates, the tired sigh that leaves his lips making you buckle by the knees despite being seated.
You never wanted to disappoint him. You never wanted to be looked down upon, most especially by Jungkook, because every little detail adds up into your head like an overtired piggy bank you donât ever want to let go of, even if keeping it close to you means it would lose its value.
Youâre keeping score, even if Jungkook never did. Youâre more wired than heâll ever be, and just the slightest slip of his attitude (even the tiniest upset sigh from his lips or a clench of his jaw) makes it known to you that he wouldnât understand how it feels to be pathetically reliant over the slightest chance at love.
"Am I not?" you snap. "Will I just be Yoongi's little sister to you forever?"
"Stop putting words in my mouth. You know that's not what I meant," he spits defensively, brows knitting in genuine disdain because he canât even think how a vile thought has ever crossed your mind.
"Then finish the sentence, Jungkook," you goad. âIf I'm not your best friend, and if I'm not your best friend's sister either, what exactly am I?"
Jungkook sharply sucks in a breath, screwing his eyes shut as you mess with every last bit of his inhibition. He never liked fighting with you, and whenever you actually did, heâd be ridden with guilt even before said fight is concluded. He doesnât like hurting you that way because Jungkook knows, truly, that heâd be more capable of inflicting it on you than you ever could for him.
Or so he thinks.
He knows he does it every time (even if he shoves the fact deep to the back of his memory) that he comes around. He knows he does every time he gives you either a carefree laugh or a sorry hand on the small of your back every time you confess.
He even knows heâs hurting you now.
"I didn't tell you because I know you would disapprove."
"When has that ever stopped you?" you scoff, the soft, lived-in quality of the hairtie on your person suddenly making your wrist itch. âIf I never saw her story, that's just it then? If I never asked Yoongi, you wouldn't tell me?"
"Why's it such a big deal?" Jungkook throws his head back in disbelief, briefly recalling the way he looked happy, content, in the picture Sora shared from last night. âWhy does it matter so badly to you whether I get back with Sora or not?"
"Because you matter badly to me!" you exclaim, digging your nails into the palms of your hands to stop them from flailing and finding their way to Jungkookâs arms to hold him still, not because heâs thinking about leaving, but because you donât want to leave and you want to be reminded of it. âAre we not best friends, Jungkook? A-are weâ are we just people who see each other practically everyday?" you swallow the lump in your throat. âWhen I see you, I tell you about how my day went. I tell you about what I'm thinking. I... I've never withheld anything from you.â
There was never a time youâve hidden anything from Jungkook. Heâd been the witness of everything, both significant and pointless, in your life. Heâs your best friend. Heâs your Jungkook, whether or not in the way you want him to be.
The only thing is that Jungkook canât say the same for you.
"That's you, then," he rasps thickly, exhaling with his teeth grinding together from how tight his jaw is clenching. "Do you see me snooping about who you're with? Do you see me hounding you about your boyfriends and-..."
"I don't tell you shit because I don't have any of that," you interrupt. âWhat I only have is you and you know that!â
Youâre barely getting into the thick of it when the front door opens and your brother appears like a lifeline for Jungkook and the complete opposite of it for you, the stupid, hopeful smile on his face with the accompanying words of "I bought chicken!" making everything in your chest seem forgotten.
You're twenty-two when Jungkook tells you that not only does he still not see you as a woman heâs in love with, but he also doesnât see you as his best friend. Youâre twenty-two when you throw a tantrum in the middle of dinner, ripping off Jungkookâs hairtie from your wrist and tossing it in the trash, right after he cuts up your favorite boneless chicken for you in front of your brother.
Back then, you were nineteen when Jungkook gave you the first slice of his birthday cake, even if you spent a month saving up for the expensive, heavy-duty hard drive for his gift and even longer writing up the letter that was saved as the only document in the device, only for him to spend less than five minutes to scan your letter and move on with cutting the cake thatâs not even in the flavor that you liked.
You were twenty when Jungkook replaced your flat tire for you because you didnât want to anger Yoongi who only warmed up to lend you his new car after incessant begging for three months. You were twenty when you held up the umbrella so the rain wouldnât soak him and get into his eyes while he saved your life, the words âthank you, love youâ slipping out of you from habit, only for Jungkook to loosen his hold on the wrench for the briefest second before resuming.
You were twenty-one when he gave you his shirt to wear after coming home drunk to your shared apartment with Yoongi, because surely, your brother seeing you in his best friendâs clothing would be far less concerning than seeing you practically blackout wasted. You were only twenty-one when you wore his shirt backwards and inside-out (because Jungkook refused to even look in your direction at the time), clutching to him tightly while letting it slip: âIt should be me, not Sora,â you muttered, while Jungkook only tucked you into the couch and answered Sora on the phone, telling her that she has to babysit you for the night.
The only thing you have is Jungkook and he insists that he doesnât know it.
He insists that the both of you are neither lovers or friends, but instead, something less and far worse.
Youâre twenty-two when Jungkook tells you that he doesnât get why he and Sora and the state of their relationship matter so greatly to you, and youâre also only twenty-two when you first block Jungkookâs number for just a few hours so he wouldnât bother you when heâs on his way home.
Youâre twenty-two when you realize that Jungkook didnât even leave you a message in the first place.
( ⥠)
Little by little, everythingâs looking up for your family.
For starters, your momâs no longer accidentally misusing emojis and abbreviations whenever she texts in the family group chat. You donât have to be choking over air when she texts KYS after you tell her that you had a bad day (she thinks it means Keep Your Smile), and Yoongi doesnât have to wince when she sends a tombstone emoji after telling her that he had a difficult time with one of his patients (she thinks itâs a gray cathedral window, and itâs her way of telling him to look outside and take a breather).
Your dadâs also looking into being more of a handyman in the house, now that theyâre practically empty nesters most weeks of the month and Jungkook fixing your step that one (1) time sparked something in him.
Yoongiâs even happier doing his residency, enough for him to not collapse face-down on your coach and talk to you through muffled yelling about who should order what.
Everyone whoâs most important to you have things looking up for them and oddly enough, contrary to your own belief, it gives you a little hope. You donât feel bitter seeing life treat them a little lighter (even if itâs still less than what they deserve) even if you think youâre the only one whoâs not moving forward.
You never harbored any deep resentment for Yoongi being the smarter child. Heâs the one whoâs even more volatile between the two of you whenever someone even just so attempt to point out how you were falling short to him by just being fine. You werenât incredible by any means, and you didnât want to start being excellent now when everyoneâs already complacent with the way you are.
Itâs either youâre seen or youâre not, thereâs no in-between. Youâre either Yoongiâs pretty sister whom nobody knows what degree sheâs even taking, or youâre nobody at all.
Youâre either a best friend or something far less significant. Youâre either a mainstay cast member who got to be that in the first place by repeating the same overtired lines on the same skit that had been relevant once and recycled ever since, or youâre a fleeting extra who worked her whole life only to be recognized by something downright insignificant and even insulting.
Youâre either Yoongiâs little sister that gets to hang around with Jungkook, or youâre someone whoâs known Jungkook for a long time and just happen to love him ever since â whatever it is, you wouldnât be recognized the way you want to be.
Youâre yet to maximize the freedom of your youth and the sheer realization that you donât plan on being as booked and busy as your brother, but by whatever cosmic power and due diligence of being the youngest child, you opt out of partying with your friends from university to instead get groceries with Yoongi and Jungkook.
You willingly choose to do the mundane, not because you already know youâre mundane, but because you realize that the sooner you practice yourself going through the motions of life beyond whatâs serving as your unparalleled distraction, the sooner youâll accept that youâre not destined for greatness.
You know youâre not destined for greatness, but you know that youâre destined for something thatâs a little better (even if you donât know what) when you donât check your phone and are fully enthralled just walking past the new products in the toiletry aisle.
You know youâre not destined for excellence, but you know that youâre destined for something thatâs slightly brighter than the life youâre already living when you donât ask Yoongi impatiently if he must really smell every fruit that he puts into the cart.
You know youâre not destined for anything remotely important, but you believe with everything in you that itâs not entirely wrong for you to be hopeful that you might be, when you come out of the grocery store, about fifty reusable bags in hand, just to see white pouring.
"It's the first snow," you gasp in surprise, the awe in your gaze able to be spotted from a mile away, but Jungkook wouldnât know the distance because heâs already far too close to you now, a giddy laugh automatically rolling from his lips.
"I know.â
"You know what they say about that, right?" you giggle, your expectant gaze turning to him without any malice; just pure, unbridled hope like the past years and the past winters havenât hurt either of you.
"I do," he affirms, laughing as he readjusts the other fifty reusable bags filled with all the groceries Yoongiâs gotten on a whim as the both of you wait for him to go around with the car.
Youâre not meant for greatness, but Jungkook equates to it, and youâve never wanted to strive to be something youâre not so badly in your life.
"Jungkook?" you ask softly, head tilting in deep thought as you paid no attention to the snowflakes grazing your cheeks and onto the ground, gaze only focused wholly on him and nothing else.
"Yeah?" he hums. Jungkookâs lips part at the way you look at him; like heâs some higher power on an altar that has forsaken you over and over again by not making his existence known when you need him the most, yet youâre a devotee whoâs never lost faith, not even once, because you confuse your pain for hope. "I know, sweetheart. I know what you mean."
You stay silent at that, even when Yoongi arrives conveniently and takes the load out of your arms and gets you your favorite coffee and gives you the liberty to pick the music for the drive back home.
You stay silent in thought of the first snow and the first and only Jungkook in your life, but only until your brother interrupts your thoughts.
Jungkookâs been the only one to occupy your existence on every first snow youâve seen and committed to heart, but along with that, heâs also every other natural calamity.
Heâs every other freak occurrence, and heâs every other reminder that seasons never stay no matter how slowly you flip the calendar and realize all the other pages you tore out in the hope that itâll be the piece wherein you get to cross out and marks as his and yours day alone.
"Hey, you mind if Jungkook and his girlfriend crash on the couch outside?" Yoongi asks, lingering by your doorframe as he tries not to grimace at the sight of all your sweatshirts piled at whatâs supposed to be the chair to your study desk. âSora's car battery died and all the shops are closed for the night."
âOh,â you whisper. You didnât know that the last time youâve ever uttered Soraâs name willingly, which was just a year ago, would only be one of the several firsts of the many times that she and Jungkook would find their way back to each other. âThey're back together. Again.â
Yoongi sighs, not in disappointment (he never would), but in understanding. âIt's okay if you don't want them to. I can just make up an excuse."
You can see the exhaustion wearing down on your brother from medical school and somehow juggling you and everything in between. You can see the eldest child whoâs meant for greatness and has just finished doing his grocery shopping and doesnât have any time to referee any complaints you may have for your impending visitors.
You only see him and the tiredness that you deem is warranted for someone as great as him, and not the exhaustion youâve accumulated for being anything less.
"It's okay. This is your place anyway."
"You pay half the rent too."
"But he's your friend,â you reason weakly, sitting by the edge of your bed as youâre no longer interested in resting at its very comfort.
"You're the one who loves him,â Yoongi mutters lowly (but loud and clear for you to hear), making you roll your eyes at the reminder.
Itâs the first time heâs ever spoken of it to you, but neither of you flinch at the fact. Heâs brought it up randomly on the first snow of the year but you donât have it in you to address the raging fluctuations of what comes with loving Jungkook unrequitedly.
"He and Sora can sleep over. Just don't give them my room," you concede, sighing as you stand up with a newfound will, albeit concerning.
"What? Where will you sleep then?" he furrows his brows, eyes following you around your room as you fish out a backpack and just start throwing things in haphazardly.
"I'll just sleep over at a friend's. I.. I don't want to be here when they are," you answer briefly, the dimness in your gaze enough to make Yoongi back off.
Itâs enough to make your brother let you go scot-free, but never enough to make Jungkook understand.
Heâs perplexed, knocking at your door for minutes on end until he decides to open it slowly, only to see that you weren't there to begin with. Jungkookâs not even perplexed, probably, because perplexed would mean that heâd harbor some degree of amusement and he isnât feeling that in the slightest â all heâs feeling is just pure, overflowing panic.
While Sora is in the bathroom, Jungkook practically crashes his entire weight as he opens Yoongi's door, even if he knows that the poor guy must be either studying or sleeping already.
"Yoongi. Yoongi wake up. Yoongi," he hisses, chest caving in as he shakes your brother awake. âY/Nâs missing. She's not in her room. We need to find her."
"The fuck?" Yoongi could only sleepily whisper, groggily rubbing his eyes. "She's at a friend's."
"Why?" Jungkook almost spits in confusion, eyes narrowed at the possible thought process.
Yoongi rolls his eyes, collapsing back into his pillow after having his shoulders basically rearranged by Jungkookâs sheer panic alone. "Beats me."
"Do you know this friend?"
"Relax. She's twenty-three."
"Do you know this friend?" Jungkook repeats, each word becoming more enunciated than the last. Heâs getting angry by the sound of it (if Yoongi could pick it up correctly), the apparent âcarelessnessâ of your own family member irking him.
"I don't know. She doesn't like being hogged so I didn't ask," he groans. âTaehyung, probably? He lives nearby."
"What?" Jungkook grits, his hand almost collaring Yoongiâs shirt if not for his fist closing in on itself to remind himself that Yoongiâs the only way for him to get answers. âYour sister is sleeping over at a guy's house? By herself? Are you insane? Why would you let her?!"
"They're friends...?" Yoongi offers slowly but surely, his tone taking on the most obvious route to Jungkookâs otherwise unbelieving state. "God, Jungkook, can you let me sleep? I really don't want to talk about my sister's sex life with you right now."
"So she's having sex with her friend?!" Jungkook practically whisper-yells to his ear, the tremble to his breathing making Yoongi shake for the briefest second.
"What? No! Noâ I don't know...? Fuck! Just shut up and turn off the lights again. I have an early day tomorrow."
Youâre twenty-three when Jungkook sends you a lengthy text about how itâs beyond disappointing that youâre being irresponsible, followed by the multiple, desperate messages for you to text him your location so he could pick you up so you could be safe at home.
Youâre twenty-three when Jungkook loses sleep over you, despite Sora sleeping beside him in the living room of your shared apartment with your brother, his red, swollen, and fatigued eyes only settled on your contact photo that he took of you in his phone.
Youâre twenty-three when you admit to Jungkook in your own way, once again, that you love him, and youâre also twenty-three when he lets you down in the best way he knows how.
Youâre twenty-three when you spend the night of the first snow at a friendâs house to escape the existence of Jungkook and Sora in your very own home, along with the ghost of the weight that comes with settling for never knowing him at all so you wouldnât be hurt like this â only to come back the next morning, seeing him holding his girlfriend in his arms.
( ⥠)
You were twenty-four when Jungkook gifted you a gold bracelet.
Normally, Jungkook wouldnât even think twice about jewelry because for as long as he wore it, all he needed to make sure was that it didnât turn his skin green and smell weird after being splashed under hard water (which is practically all of the running water in his place) for two seconds.
Granted that it was your graduation and just like every other overeager loved one, Jungkook was assumed (by your parents and Yoongi and every friend youâve had in university that has an inkling about your dynamic), wrongly, to just buy a name-brand item and call it a day after writing a sincere letter for you.
You know heâs not well-off. You know that he rarely ever splurges on himself and so you didnât expect for him to go out of his way to get you something. Unlike you, Jungkook isnât big on giving gifts, and although thatâs never been a problem for you before, it always has been to him.
He doesnât exactly feel patronized when Yoongi gives him his âneglected thingsâ that just turn out to be the brand-new, expensive items Jungkook only ever looked up fondly and as a pipe dream (he swears heâs seen this scene before in Bride Wars); itâs more of a haunting, raring feeling in him to get even and give something thatâs more than his service.
Jungkook may tend to your momâs garden with his green thumb and teach your dad how to use power tools without crying and even cook meals for Yoongi when heâs too tired to even lift his head up, but he didnât just want to only be of service to you. Thereâs no amount of him driving you around and parallel parking in the most difficult spots, or even just being the constant figure in your living room that hums (and makes you feel less insane and alone) as you talk to yourself about your exam reviewers for a course that youâre barely passing could ever be enough.
Jungkook wanted to get you something real. Something tangible that you couldnât only think back on like a distant, foggy memory every three years when a random thought crosses your mind about his good nature.
You were twenty-four when Jungkook gifted you a solid gold (none of that hollowed-out shit; read: ditching the aforementioned meant another solid two weeks of extreme budgeting) bracelet and a heartfelt letter on your graduation.
You were twenty-four when he dressed up in his best polo and gave you his gift with nothing but nervousness for you to actually love it, and you were only twenty-four when you hugged him the tightest that youâve ever did, kissing his cheek in pure excitement.
You were only twenty-four too, when you realize that Jungkookâs a friend who perhaps really just wanted to give you something memorable and expensive on your special day and nothing more; because if he was more and he wanted to be more, then he wouldâve stuck around for the afterparty.
If he wanted to be more and not any less than what you already were, then he wouldnât have excused himself when you bounded towards him with the bracelet on your wrist and too much of your courage waiting at the back of your throat.
If Jungkook wanted to be more, then he wouldâve let his lips graze your cheek for a millisecond longer right after you look up at him: âThank you, love you.â
If he wanted to be more with you by loving you back, then Jungkook wouldâve let his hand linger on your back for just another second more with more firmness instead of gentleness, because youâve had enough of the latter; he wouldnât have left, and he wouldnât have reminded you of your place either: âDonât make bad decisions tonight.â
You were twenty-four when you started to be resigned with Jungkook, yet you donât know at what age would you grow to be sick of him.
You canât tell when youâre going to move past his rejections due to the maturity youâve always thought you harbored, enough to be the driving force to just settle for however you can keep Jungkook in your life and not ruin the friendship.
You canât tell when youâre supposed to stop growing and stop being level-headed about your yearly confessions that in the long run, have never hurt Jungkook.
You donât know if youâre ever going to yearn to be volatile and unforgiving; you donât know when the weight of Jungkook telling you over and over again that he doesnât see you that way will finally settle in your bones, permanently, instead of coming and going like a holiday that you grew to both anticipate and dread.
Jungkookâs not a shifty, aloof distant relative that you only get to see once or twice in a decade when an old relative from your extended family dies.
Heâs not an overly proud alumnus you see in campus grounds every two weeks chatting up professors who are tired of seeing him.
Heâs not anything specific in your life besides definitively being your brotherâs best friend and your own, but only from a distance. You and Jungkook were close enough to hang out without Yoongi present, but the availability of the other was something you werenât even eagerly seeking anymore just like the old times.
Itâs you whoâs adding to the space that Jungkook established himself, and you thought for the longest time that youâre fine with it; that for as long as you donât get too emotional (read: resentful) seeing the gold bracelet on your wrist, then that would mean you and him are at the perfect distance away from each other until your inevitable, yearly confession happens.
Jungkook, too, thought that heâd been okay with the added space (or whatever it meant) despite seeing you almost every two days at this point, because he thought that you being less attached would make it balanced.
You know to yourself utterly and completely that knowing Jungkook more doesnât lead to loving him less; itâs only what you hope to happen otherwise.
Itâs what he also pleads to himself when he sees you tonight, sitting at the chairs by the parking lot of the hospital.
âY/N?â he immediately asks out loud, barely shifting the gear to park when he walks (read: runs) to you with a gasp, eyes wide and concerned. âWhat are you doing here? Are you okay?â
âWhat are you doing here?â you return the question, unable to process why out of all the times, it just had to be now when you see Jungkook unplanned; it couldnât have been at the subway yesterday or even at the convenience store this morning.
Out of all the times that heâd see you accidentally (heaven knows the two of you see each other far too much), it just had to be when you were clutching your abdomen, writhing and sweating in pain.
âI borrowed Yoongiâs car so I took it to the carwash and-âŠâ Jungkook trails off for a preliminary answer, shaking his head to physically reboot himself. âSorry, I really canât care about Yoongiâs car right now. What the hell are you doing here?â he repeats, running his palm over your sweaty forehead thatâs simultaneously warm and freezing, the lack of any ease in your face making him panic.
âItâs nâ fuck, that hurts,â you seethe, growing breathless as your eyelids fall heavy.
âY/N, hey, hey. Whatâs happening? Where does it hurt?â Jungkook asks firmly this time, worry etching on to his face as his hands unconsciously tremble as he tries to survey you the best he could yet he canât even think straight with your whole body contorted in pain.
You gasp at a particularly sharp burning sensation, pointing to the right of your abdomen with your index finger barely even outstretched in pain.
Jungkook screws his eyes shut, throwing his head back as he paces in tiny circles, holding your clammy hand as he tries to not faint on the spot. âOh my god. Oh my god. Holy fuck I donât know what thatâs called b-but youâre in pain andâ a-and how did you even get here? Did you drive?â
The nod you give him makes him even more lightheaded.
âWhy the fuck would you drive here? Are you insane? Y-you shouldâve called me!â
âKook, nowâs not the-âŠâ you wince, the pained gasp that leaves your eyes rolling to the back of your head being the last straw for Jungkook before carrying you bridal style into the emergency room, that realistically was just a few steps away from you, but more-on felt like a thousand yards.
The pain felt like torture for you, and seeing your pain felt like a living, breathing, writhing version of hell for Jungkook as he tried to get everything under control.
He trembled while filling out your information and waiting outside of the surgery ward. He shook when he called Yoongi to go downstairs and informed him about what happened.
Jungkook was nothing short of miserable waiting for you to be okay, but nobody told him that it wouldnât get any better once he finally sees you awake.
He doesnât believe you even when youâre up and are raring to go home. He doesnât crack a smile when you tell him that youâre okay and he was just being dramatic.
He doesnât let up the slightest bit when you try and be back to how you normally are with him, when just hours ago, Jungkook prayed to a god he only partially believed in and even offered himself to just for the betterment of your condition.
You swear up and down that youâre okay, but itâs not enough for him.
âAre you that upset seeing me in a hospital bed?â you mutter, the roll of your eyes only making you dizzy for a split second instead of a full minute this time.
âThink about it, genius,â Jungkook grumbles, crossing his arms on his chest but not before pushing your vegetables closer to you on your plate, gathering the leftovers of your pudding from the edge of your cup with a spoon.
âIâm not going to apologize,â you mutter, looking away from him and your tray and instead on a poorly-dubbed childrenâs show on the TV, just to shield yourself from the confrontation that you werenât looking for.
The thing about Jungkook is that he didnât pick a time or a place to get into anything with you, whether good or bad.
The thing is, Jungkookâs goodness and concern for you have never not went hand-in-hand with his overbearingness that friends shouldnât have in the first place.
âGood. You shouldnât,â he stubbornly punctuates.
âThen why are you mad at me?â
âIâm not mad at you. Iâm mad at myself,â he groans, sneaking a glance at his watch which reminds him that he had paged a nurse ten minutes ago and that he needs to follow up. âWhat did I do to make you think that you canât call me when thereâs an emergency? Do you know how dangerous it was for you to drive at that state?â
Jungkookâs voice wavers at the question, not expecting you to answer with the way your jawâs clenched and youâre still refusing to look at him.
âI-I get it. Iâm trying to get it. Your parents arenât in the city and you didnât want them to fly out this late, I get it. Yoongiâs busy being a resident a-and you didnât want to worry him, I get it a little bit,â Jungkook sniffles. âBut you not calling me when youâre in pain? When you need someone to drive you to the ER? When you just need someone to be there with you, no questions asked?â he scoffs, shaking his head. âI donât get it, Y/N. I donât get it at all.â
âYou really donât get it,â you concede, gaze flitting over to him. Jungkookâs sat on an uncomfortable chair with his legs spread, still dressed in last nightâs clothes and torment, the furrow in his brows inerasable. âI didnât want to be a burden.â
Jungkook tolerates your mouth. He tolerates a lot of your words and sentiments and occasional callousness when you were emotional despite being mature, but this just cuts it.
He doesnât tolerate you now.
âHow will you ever be a burden? You were having an emergency and the first thing in your mind is that you donât want to inconvenience me?â he spits. âItâs not like itâs traffic, o-or you eating my takeouts, Y/N. Itâs you being in danger, donât you get that? Thatâs not an inconvenience!â he laughs without any amusement. âIf you still think it is no matter what I say, then you shouldâve inconvenienced me. You shouldâve bothered me. You shouldâve known that I wouldâve went out of my way just for you to consider inconveniencing me.â
âWell I donât want to, okay? I donât want to bother you, Jungkook!â
âWhat the hell do I have going on in my life thatâs enough for me to not come to you when you need me?â
âYou have everything going on!â you exclaim, throwing your head back on your pillow, inadvertently making yourself wince and make Jungkook apologetic. âY-you have a job, you have Sora, you have-âŠâ
âWrong,â he tuts, sighing heavily as he adjusts your head on the pillow, grabbing one of his own from his chair to secure you from the sides. âI can have nothing or everything and Iâll still come to you.â
You purse your lips, ignoring the way his touch is more firm than it is gentle.
âYou donât have to come to me if youâre already with me,â you confess in your own words, the sigh that leaves you taking everything not to round up to a pitiful, watery smile that sums up your anticipated rejection.
âSweetheart,â Jungkook answers simply, in his own way.
Youâre twenty-five when you feel yourself surrender little by little.
"Okay," you roll your eyes, the snort that erupts from you making his brows raise in curiosity.
"Okay?" he echoes. "You're okay with it?"
"Yeah, why wouldn't I be?"
"I don't knowâ I-... I mean I know this isn't the first time you confessed and this isn't my first time either turning you down, but-..." Jungkook trails uneasily, shaking his head softly as he tries to regain his bearings. ââŠI don't know either why I asked if you're okay."
âMy appendix did get removed a few hours ago, so thatâs why,â you smile playfully, going back to your meal like nothing had happened.
Like Jungkook hadnât lost his mind hours ago, and like you hadnât confessed just minutes ago while you were laying in your hospital bed.
Youâre twenty-five when you let yourself feel the hurt.
( ⥠)
It only occurs to you when youâre twenty-six, that Jungkookâs seen all your hardships, whereas the only suffering that you had to see him endure was the price of having Sora as his first love.
Every other difficulty and every other misstep Jungkookâs had in his life are only either retold to you or assumed by your conscience. Besides his turbulent on and off relationship with the only girlfriend heâs ever had, everything that wasnât the good and the easy about him wasnât known to you.
Itâs as if despite having the privilege to grow alongside you, Jungkook deliberately went out of his way to ensure that you never see him vulnerable if it wasnât for love. You realize at your age belatedly that youâve lived this long and have never seen him feel so deeply for anything that wasnât the matters of his heart.
You only know the big chunks and the bits and pieces of your closest friendâs childhood, but never to the extent that your brother knew him. Youâve questioned the lacking details about him over and over again, but in hindsight, you realize that you didnât ask enough.
You never asked for any clarification as stubbornly as they expected you to, not because you were coincidentally proving Jungkook right that you were better off not knowing the seemingly unimportant details of his life, but because you were already content with what he gave you.
You took what Jungkook could only give you, but he canât say the same now.
Youâre twenty-six when you hear from Yoongi that Jungkook and Sora have broken up, for good this time, because she cheated on him and it had become his last straw.
Youâre twenty-six when Jungkook learns that he only knows the hardships of your life and barely ever its triumphs (whatever the hell that meant in your book and not his), because when he sees you making out with Taehyung in your old childhood bedroom while your brotherâs in the middle of throwing a party downstairs, he realizes that everything seemingly favorable in your life was only retold to him.
He should be relieved (right?) to see you at home instead of finding out through Yoongi that you were sleeping over at a friendâs he didnât know, but none of the solace ever comes to his system. It doesnât help that the guy who scrambles off you if the same guy that you had ran to all those years ago (Jungkook only knows after keeping tabs on Taehyung for literal years, it seems like).
It doesnât help that youâre more angry at him than you are embarrassed of the entire situation.
"Do your parents know?"
"Know what?" you scrunch your nose, entirely lost to what Jungkookâs trying to get at.
"What you're doing," he details with narrowed eyes. âWho you're doing."
"What the fuck?" you spit with vitriol, in genuine disbelief whereas Jungkook remains stoic from where he stood. âIâm twenty-six. I have my own place now. What are you talking about?"
Jungkook shakes his head at the reminder that youâve moved out weeks ago from your shared apartment with Yoongi and he only got to know when he crashed at your (former) place after a particularly rough day, only to be genuinely confused at the sight of Just Yoongi At The Door, your own brother perplexed that Jungkook didnât even know you moved out by then.
âIâm talking about how you're acting out like a teenager, getting it on with-..."
"Acting out?" you parrot.
"Yeah, that's what I said,â he grits, the sarcastic laugh that leaves his lips making your ears ring.
"What would I be acting out against? I'm not some teenager rebelling against curfew or-..."
"I thought you liked me, Y/N,â Jungkook enunciates word for word, making you stop dead in your tracks.
You werenât planning on confessing tonight.
You werenât even thinking of digging up your unresolved feelings for Jungkook because you didnât want to be the bigger person about it; for once, you wanted to be the more vulnerable and volatile friend between the two of you.
"What kind of person keeps confessing to her brother's best friend every single year, yet still make out with another best friend of her brother's as if nothing she said was true?"
The ache that your chest molds around is far too big of a statue, concrete and rooted in its desire to let the pain seep into you.
"But you don't like me, Jungkook. That's the thing.â
"And you think that changes everything?" he asks, voice cracking at the edges. âWhat ifâ w-what if I lied awhile ago, huh? What if I-... what if I lied about not liking you, yet you're still out here letting Taehyung put hickeys on you? What then?"
You screw your eyes shut in utter disbelief of the possibilities that Jungkook springs onto you out of nowhere, tears pricking painfully.
âBut did you lie?"
"That's not what I'm-..."
"Did you or did you not lie, Jungkook? That's what I'm asking first," you interrupt, fists balled in utter despair because if you donât do something, anything to ground you, then youâd faint right in front of him and nurse the hurt like itâs the only thing keeping you alive.
"I didn't," Jungkook whispers, eyes steeling as he regains his composure. "B-but that still doesnât-âŠâ
"No. It changes everything," you swallow the lump in your throat. âI can have this stupid, teenage crush on you and still be hurt. I can be stupid by ignoring all your past rejections and still get tired," you waver. âI can look stupid liking you from afar, only for you to reject me year after year, and still do whatever that I want to do with Taehyung.â
"If I lied and told you that I liked you back, and we become this... w-we become this fantasy of yours that you never let go of," Jungkook argues, exhaling heavily. "What then, Y/N? If you could do this now, what else are you capable of doing if we end up together?" he gnaws on his bottom lip. âWhat can you tell me that would make me trust that I can be your boyfriend without you doing whatever the hell you want?"
"You're asking me that?" you whisper in disbelief, vision spinning on the weight that Jungkook demands from you. âYou're asking me to convince you that I won't cheat on you, even if you told me again and again that you'd never want to be with me?"
âYoongi told you, didnât he?â Jungkook replies, meeting your eyes but not where you stood, the stubbornness in his gaze making you bow your head in surrender.
"My god, Jungkook. You're fucking insane.â
He buckles by the knees at that, pointing to himself weakly as his eyes widen. "I am? I'm the one who's-...?" he pauses, jaw clenching angrily. âIâm the one who's confused, Y/N. I'm the one who can't tell how I'd stand in your life if I give in-..."
Give in, like it's pity.
Give in, like it's charity for the needy and returning your feelings would be the one final thing that cements Jungkookâs goodness.
Give in, like you didnât spend the better part of your life pining after him without any promise because you werenât afraid to be seen trying; you werenât afraid to be in love with him.
"Then I won't confuse you anymore! I'll make it easy for the both of us," you burst, pushing past him in your fit of anger. âYou don't have to think about being cheated on. You don'tâ y-you don't have to think about the image of me making out with Taehyung behind your back while you're.. y-you're fucking conjuring this life with me in the future when you don't even want to be with me now."
Give in, like you were never the one for him in the first place.
"I'll stop,â you whisper.
"I didn't tell you to,â Jungkook grits, shaking his head in disbelief as his eyes track your direction towards the door.
"I don't need you to."
( ⥠)
You dream of getting over Jungkook on a random day.
The concept of it comes to you randomly after countless nights of losing sleep over your big fight with Jungkook that had instilled a rift in your friendship for months. You havenât gotten over him (specifically on a random day that you so badly craved to prove that unlearning the ways of being attentive to him can happen in an as insignificant of a day as Wednesday), but you atleast attained your silent plea of being the one whoâs more vulnerable.
Of being the one whoâs pined after, not necessarily because Jungkook was completely in the wrong and thereâs no basis for his fears, but because you wanted to know what it felt like being yearned for.
You didnât have to be brave for the two of you because you were no longer grasping at straws to keep Jungkook whenever and however you can.
The only reason you dream of getting over Jungkook on a random day was because you want the feeling of the love you have for him to leave you when you're folding your clothes and you can ignore the fact that his shirts keep washing up into your basket despite not having stepped foot in your new place.
You want to get over him on a random day when you feel unsure of it the most, because only then would you prove to yourself that something as real and as tangible as your yearning is just as fundamental as learning to live without him in your life.
You want to get over Jungkook on a random day, even when you donât want to, because the only way out for you is through.
You want to get over him but you canât; you want to get over him even when he confesses his love for you at a time that youâve stepped out of the middle, which was the only place youâve been trying to coax him into to remind you that your yearningâs alive.
Youâre twenty-seven when Jungkook first confesses to you.
âIâm in love with you and you donât have to do anything about it,â he whispers, clutching a bouquet of your favorite flowers by your front door, left hand still trembling as he clutches the handwritten note of your address given by your brother who had promised to cut him off forever if he didnât make things right with you. Jungkook isnât doing this to get even with you, however â heâs doing this out of sheer longing. âAnd you donât have to be in love with me for me to do everything about it.â
.
.
.
Youâre twenty-seven, and you still know that Yoongiâs meant for greatness.
You know that heâs meant for greatness when heâs only a few years older than you and yet heâs already in the finishing steps of opening his own clinic, the technicalities of it amusing you because at his age, Yoongiâs acclaimed for his skill and his drive.
At your age, the hallmarks that you live with are that youâre going to join the family business (read: inserting yourself in Yoongiâs clinic) and make use of yourself to make up for the fact that youâre not particularly excellent at anything, and that finally, this is the second to the last year youâre going to be allowing yourself to confess your love to Jungkook.
Just because you allowed yourself to all those years ago, however, didnât mean you were actually going to do it any longer.
You were freshly twenty-six when you and Jungkook had the fight that inexplicably changed your lives forever, more than growing up and witnessing each other change had ever did â youâre three months away from turning twenty-eight, and Jungkookâs never been more riddled with fear of loving you, but he does it anyway.
Heâs more scared of losing you than he is with loving you, yet he knows he canât forsake either in his pursuit.
Jungkook knows that heâs not meant for greatness, but you equate it, and heâs never wanted to strive to be something heâs not so badly in his life. He runs to you at full speed and he doesnât care about the impact nor about the possibility that it wouldnât bring him anywhere.
âYou're not Sora," he utters when he sees you zoning out, gaze fixated on the first snow that falls right outside of the window of the clinic thatâs still yet to be completed, hallowed out enough for his voice and his sentiment to echo throughout the walls. âAnd I don't want Sora."
"Nobody wakes up and just realizes that they don't love someone anymore, Jungkook," you murmur, following the way the bits of white patter against the ground helplessly because they have no choice but to fall.
Jungkookâs been nothing short of pathetic with his longing the entire year.
Even between him working as your brotherâs contractor and even helping out the labor yet not ever running late from driving you to and from your place with homemade meals in hand, to him pulling his weight by being of service to you, by being anything that you asked and didnât ask him to be â Jungkook, admittedly, canât fill in the gaps of what longing for him in the past had instilled in you: doubt.
"I did,â Jungkook answers. âIt happens."
"You spent the better part of your youth being in love with her," you remind him with a gentle roll of your eyes, ignoring the way he comes closer to give you his hard hat that youâve always insisted on ditching out of stubbornness. âThat doesn't just happen out of nowhere."
Itâs daunting that you can talk about yours and Jungkookâs past out in the open.
Itâs new.
"It happened because it wasn't out of nowhere," he clarifies. âIâve been on and off with her in the first place because Iâ we, couldn't let go of the comfortable option which was each other."
âJust stop talking,â you murmur weakly, the lilt of your voice similar to the random days that creep up to you and remind you of the shade of the past, of Sora, that looms over you out of nowhere. "I... I-I must've had this conversation with you over and over again, Jungkook," you frown. "You're going to get back with each other like always."
"We're not," he corrects you, standing in front of you so closely that you could feel his warmth cling to your skin. âSora and I are completely through."
"Whatever you say," you mutter, throwing your hands weakly, ready to call it a night when Jungkook grabs ahold of you firmly, undoubtedly, his eyes swimming in concern.
"Do you want time to prove it?" he tilts his head. "We could wait around for a lifetime and you'll believe me by then."
"I think I've done enough waiting,â you chuckle, drawing a laugh out of him.
Youâre turning twenty-eight in three months, and Jungkookâs confessed his love for you more times than youâve ever did for him in your lifetime; heâll still love you under the weight of your shoe.
"You're meant for happiness, Y/N. You don't have to wait,â Jungkook murmurs. âAnd I need to work on being meant for you, so I have to wait."
#heh :D#jungkook imagine#jungkook oneshot#jungkook oneshots#jungkook angst#jungkook angst imagine#jungkook fluff#jungkook x reader#jungkook x y/n#jungkook au#jungkook scenario#jungkook fanfic#jungkook x you#bts jungkook imagine#jungkook scenarios#jeon jungkook x reader#jeongguk imagine#jeongguk oneshot
1K notes
·
View notes
Text
Sexy F*cking Nerd
Dean Winchester x F!Reader
Summary: When Dean discovers a little secret of (Y/n)'s during a case research session he can't help but let temptation get the best of him.
Warnings: Language, Smut, Fingering, PinV, Oral (M receiving), slight angst if you squint, Dean having a glasses kink (not really a warning but not everyone wears them hahaha lucky bastards)
MDNI! 18+
Word Count: 5688
A/N: It's taken a little while but here is the second competition winner from a few weeks back, the prompt provided by the wonderful @foxyjwls007 - I hope you like it!

The motel room was stuffy to say the least - that usual aroma of stale cigarettes and cheap air freshener lingering around us. There was a dripping sound coming from God knows where and the AC hummed in between the concerning clinking from deep within the vents. It was crap. So crap. But it was home for a few nights; just like all the motel rooms that came before. Dean stepped past me and over the threshold, immediately slinging his duffle and jacket onto his chosen bed. He stretched his arms above his head, the grey Henley clutching his muscular abdomen and rising enough to flaunt what lay beneath. I sighed, following him in and slumping onto the bed beside his - the musty stench from the sheets enveloping me.
âWellâŠâ Dean started, pulling Sam's laptop out of his bag and placing it on the small table by the window.
âWellâŠ?â My voice echoed as I focused on the ceiling fan that spun off centre.
â...This is⊠nice?â His statement was more of a question as he looked around with raised eyebrows. I propped myself up on my elbows, flashing him a look of speculation.
âSeriously?â A moment passed before he huffed a long-held breath and slapped his large palms on his thighs.
âNo of course not, this place sucks more dick than a hooker on payday.â
âYou got that right,â I flopped back down onto the bed, a small dust cloud erupting under my weight. I closed my eyes and listened as Dean pulled a chair out from under the table, slumping down into it. Then there was the familiar click of the laptop opening followed by the sound of stuttered not-quite-touch-typing, presumably he was starting work on the case that weâd come here to investigate. The tap tap tap of whatever was leaking began to drill into my brain, my patience already wearing thin with the rooms dire ambiance. I pulled myself up to sitting, criss-crossing my legs on the bed and brushing whatever that dust from the bedding was off my sweater sleeves.
âWhen's Sam back?â I asked, watching as Dean searched the keyboard in front of him for some long lost letter.
âUuuh, I'm not sure. He said to work this case without him.â
âUgghhh, I bet he's having way more fun than us right now, it's not fair,â I plopped my chin into my palm and stared past the older Winchester out the window, almost willing Sam to appear and walk in like any other day.
âIt's just some dumb wedding, I doubt he's having that much fun.â
I scoffed before I could stop myself, Dean breaking eye contact with the screen to throw me a raised eyebrow.
âLook,â I collected myself, âyou didn't know Sam in college. He won't admit it but he was popular. Really popular. Not the total nerd you think he is. He's absolutely having fun with these people.â
âYeah right. So who's at this wedding anyway? Why was it so important that he just had to be there?â
I rolled my eyes, knowing full well Sam had already told him all the details. Typical Dean.
âIt's for a couple of friends who he and Jess were close with back then. Pretty sure the bride was prom queen in highschool or something and the groom was a trust fund jock. Either way, not my crowd,â I sighed slightly, memories from my college days flooding my mind.
Deans eyebrows twitched into a small frown, his thoughts seeming to cloud his vision for a second before he reluctantly dismissed them. I looked down into my lap for a moment, reminiscing how I always kept my distance from Sam whilst at Stanford, but he had always been that boy that would make my heart flutter when he spoke up in class or when I'd see him on the quad with his friends. I remember seeing him with his nose in a book once at my usual desk in the library, my cheeks burning when he caught me staring. Who would've thought several years down the line I'd be sat in a bottom-rung motel room with his obscenely good looking older brother researching monster lore. At least we would be researching monster lore, if it wasn't for the small growl my empty stomach had gurgled out. I couldn't stop the small pulse of embarrassment burning into my cheeks as Dean eyed me with a grin.
âWanna get some lunch?â He asked, standing up like he already knew my answer.
âFuck yes. I'm feeling burgers,â I shuffled to the edge of the bed and stood up, watching as Dean shrugged on his leather jacket and headed to the door, holding it open for me.
âNow you're speaking my language.â
*
The diner was almost as sad and withered as the motel room, however the food was nothing short of spectacular. I watched in awe as Dean polished off his second burger, a small glob of sauce sticking to his stubble and threatening to drip off his chin. He must've felt me watching in wonder - or perhaps disgust - as when he looked up from his plate he shot me a questioning glance.
âWhat?â His tone was a little defensive through the mouthful of fries he'd just shovelled in. I took a second before asking, half-genuine:
âWhere do you put all of that?â
âPut what?â
âThe food - where does it go? Do you have hollow legs? Two stomachs? Does it just evaporate as soon as you swallow it?â
He grinned, wiping the sauce from his face with a napkin.
âGoes straight to the abs baby. It's muscle fuel,â he leant back in his chair, stretching a little before patting his stomach to punctuate his statement. I simply rolled my eyes.
âYeah right, you're not that muscly Dean.â
âHow would you know? You've never seen me with my shirt off.â
âI know, and I plan to keep it that way.â
He feigned a pout before returning to his fries. We ate in a comfortable silence for a few minutes, my mind absently going back to all the lore we should be trying to gather. I gripped my milkshake that had so generously been served in a thin paper cup, attempting to suck the practically solid beverage up the equally thin paper straw. Finding the nearest library would be the next task on our to-do list, despite the protesting I know I'll get from Dean.
âHey, (Y/n)?â My train of thought was derailed at the sound of my name. The slurping of over-thickened milkshake from myself ceased.
âWhat's up?â
âWhat were you like in college?â
I eyed him with caution, wondering what part of his brain was in control right now.
âWhat do you wanna know?â
Catching the wariness to divulge him to such information, he smiled slightly, shrugging his shoulders.
âI'm not asking to be weird, I just-â he paused, choosing his next words tactfully, âthe way you described Sam as being a totally different person - some hot-shot with the perfect grades, popular friends and a girlfriend like Jess - it just got me thinking. How would Sam have described you?â
I almost spat my dairy-goop back into the straw, my brain freezing.
âDean,â I started before planning what I was going to say, placing my cup on the table. âSam wouldn't be able to describe me.â
My words brought a small smirk to his lips.
âYou were that hot, huh?â
âWhat the fuck- no- I wasn't- he didn't- Sam never- â I stopped myself before I had an aneurysm and took a deep breath.
âI was in a totally different crowd to Sam. He was always surrounded by people and, well, I barely even had a crowd.â
âLone wolf?â
âBingo. But definitely not the cool, collected, stoic type. Think more, invisible to the public eye, always carrying books, and borderline selective mute because of how shy I was.â
âOh⊠what changed?,â Deans tone changed entirely, genuine intrigue seeming to take the wheel. I couldn't help but laugh slightly, remembering my method to forcing myself out of my bubble.
âThe only job I could get was in a bar. No one else wanted the hours and I desperately needed cash. I didn't really have a choice after that,â I paused, remembering how terrified I was on my first day and grinned slightly, grateful for the extra confidence I had now because I took that leap.
âHey, what sort of crowd do you think I would've been in?â
I snorted, looking up into his expectant eyes - almost captivated by the glistening greens.
âWhat am I? A BuzzFeed quiz? I have no idea Dean, you're too much of a wildcard to predict. You probably would've fit in with anyone and everyone.â
âEven you?â
For reasons unbeknownst to even myself, my breath caught in my throat. The sudden soft sincerity of his voice contradicting his usual temperament, my heart starting to flutter in my chest. If the college version of myself had met Dean back then I just know I would have been enthralled at first glance.
âI don't think you would've noticed me. You would've been surrounded by every tall, thin blonde and brunette with perfect tits. Trust me, you would've been distracted,â I smiled an almost sad smile at the thought of him simply being on university grounds and having the time of his life - knowing it was something that he was never going to get the chance to experience in this upside down life of his. Of ours. He tapped his fingers on the table for a second, likely lost in some ludicrous thought I don't think I'd want to be privy to. I attempted another slurp of my milkshake when the paper straw gave out and flopped in half, the need to leave conversation and the diner suddenly looming over me.
âCome on, let's get to the library before it closes,â I stood and pulled my oversized sweater down so it covered my ass before reaching for my backpack. Just as my fingers touched the worn fabric of the strap it was torn away, my head snapping up to Dean who flung it over one shoulder with his signature grin on his face.
âLead the way nerd.â
I couldn't help but beam at his playfulness. I hated the fact that he made it so easy to adore him. Hated that he completely overlooked how I was his total opposite in almost every way. How when we were talking, his eyes never left mine - how he was genuinely interested in what I was like in the past. And how, when I had his attention, he didn't even notice that the hot waitress had written her number on a napkin and left it next to him.
*
The trip to the library was about as eventful as it sounded. After checking out multiple books on cursed items, local lore and popular antiques from the seventies, we loaded ourselves back into the impala, made an all-important beer run before heading back to the motel.
The small table by the window was now totally smothered by a blanket of books, maps and empty beer bottles. Deans chin rested in his palms as he stared blankly at the screen in front of him, and I must've read the last sentence of the paragraph laid before me a dozen times without it even sinking in. The obnoxious dripping and humming of ancient appliances was starting to make me feel restless.
âIt has to be the boots,â Dean groaned, draining the last of his beer.
âEither the boots or the disco ball. But my money is on boots as well,â I sighed, pushing the book away from me and standing slowly, gathering the quickly accumulating litter now scattered around us.
âI'm gonna make some coffee, my brain is fried over how fucking ridiculous this case is,â I ditched the trash in the bin before filling the coffee machine, listening to it whir to life whilst I headed to my bed. I could feel Deans gaze on my back as I rummaged around my bag in search of a specific item.
âWhat are you looking fo-â he'd started to ask the question but his voice died in his throat when I turned around. I quickly pushed my newly adorned glasses up the bridge of my nose, already feeling the oversized frame start to slip down as I tried not to make a big deal over them.
âWhat?â My tone was a fraction off aggressive when I realised he was staring. He seemed to snap out of his daze, quickly rubbing the back of his neck and turning back to the laptop screen. He cleared his throat
âI uh, I didn't know you wore glasses,â I could tell from the slight tremble in his voice that his mind was reeling.
âIs there a problem with that?â
âNo! I mean, no, absolutely not. They look good. The glasses, I mean. The glasses look good. Not on their own, obviously. On your face. They look good on your face. You have a great fa-â
âDean?â
âYeah?â
âShut up.â
âSorry.â
I grabbed a mug from the cupboard and set it on the counter, filling it to the brim with caffeinated goodness. I couldn't stop the grin spreading across my lips at Deans fumbling, almost finding the whole ordeal a little charming. I sat back down at the table and pulled the books back towards me, also grabbing my pen and tattered notebook.
âThe guests at the club mentioned hearing footsteps - so it has to be the boots, right? A disco ball wouldn't make that soundâŠâ my voice trailed off when I realised that, even though Dean was looking at me, he wasn't listening to a word I was saying.
âEarth to Dean?â
He flinched slightly at his name, but felt no shame delving in with a completely off-topic question.
âSo how long have you worn glasses?â
âIâve always worn them,â I slid back into my chair at the table opposite him, not sure whether to laugh at the shocked expression on his face or whether to be concerned about his observation skills.
âWhat?! No way, I wouldâve noticed,â He opened another beer and took a sip before tracing the opening to the bottle over his bottom lip.
â I only wear them for concentration work, and I have emergency contact lenses if I know Iâm going to be around a lot of people as I donât particularly like how they look.â
Dean made a small disagreeable expression before averting his gaze from mine back to the laptop, taking another swig of his beer. I placed my coffee mug down and settled back into the book I was reading before, and after a few moments I could feel my skin begin to prickle - as though I could feel a pair of eyes on me. I glanced up, my breath immediately catching in my throat. Deans eyes found mine, burning with an intensity that made my heart hammer in my chest. I didnât want to look away, but under his gaze I felt like Iâd been stripped bare, unable to hide my insecurities from an eye that seemed to scorch through to my very core.
âDean-â
â(Y/n), you should really have more confidence in yourself; I think the glasses look cute as fuck. You should wear them more,â a fierce blush erupted across my face when he spoke, his assured tone leaving no room for disagreement. I tried desperately not to let on that his words held any sort of impact over my decisions so I looked down, away from his scrutiny and simply said:
âMaybe I will.â
He hummed in approval, finally looking elsewhere and I couldnât stop myself from breathing a sigh of relief when the pressure of his stare was averted.
The evening dragged on and an hour and a half had passed since his loaded comment. I was on the third book weâd checked out of the library, now trying desperately to find the curse that would cause a pair of 1970s glam rock boots to dance for eternity and haunt anyone who tried to wear them. This case was absurd, and I could feel myself growing restless with the small amount of progress weâd made. I huffed out a sigh and leant back in my chair, the faux leather and rusted metal creaking under my weight. Pulling the hair bobble from around my wrist I scooped my hair into a bundle on the top of my head, securing it in place; the sensation of air on my neck seemed to clear some of the fog from my brain. The messy bun was comfortably enough that I could forget it was there, and I allowed myself a stretch before leaning back over the table, grasping my pen. As I began to read the next segment, I absently traced the end of the pen over my bottom lip, running it back and forth a few times before gently nibbling on the end. I heard the shuffling of Dean moving in his seat and a ragged clearing of his throat before the sound of vigorous laptop keys clicking ensued. Without looking up at him I continued reading, the pen still tapping my bottom lip, and when I neared the bottom of the paragraph, I slowly licked the pad of my index finger. My eyes never leaving the words, I turned the page swiftly with my dampened digit, the transition from one page to the next perfectly seamless. Another shuffle from the man opposite followed by a quiet groan filled the silence between us. Pen still between my teeth, I lifted only my eyes to glance at him and noted the dusting of pink across his cheeks and the furrow in his brow. Concluding that heâd had one too many beers I decided to ignore his persistent fidgeting, returning to my previous task on monotonous reading. Several sentences in and Iâd almost forgotten Deans restlessness - that was until I pulled my bottom lip between my teeth, deep in thought, that I earned myself a throaty groan and an exasperated sigh. I looked up just in time to watch him wipe a large hand down his face, momentarily masking his pained expression.
âCan you not do that? I canât concentrate when you do that.â
âDo what?â Upon asking my question I absently took the pen between my teeth again, quickly glancing down at the book to place a mental bookmark.
âThat.â
âWhat?â
âThat. That thing you do with our mouth, and the pen, and your tongue and your finger. Can you please stop before it kills me.â
The heat beneath my skin was immediate at his admission, knowing my small, absent-minded actions were playing on his mind and making it hard for him to think straight. I instinctively crossed my legs, a fluttering in my lower belly instantly dragging my mind back to the deprived things Iâd imagined Dean doing to me in the depths of night. The places Iâd imagined his hands travelling, the areas his lips would touch and the sensations his tongue could create. These were deeply, deeply personal fantasies, and right now as Dean looked at me with a restrained hunger, I felt like I was wearing these fantasies for the world to see. For Dean to see.
âIt doesnât help that youâve been sat over there like a sexy fucking librarian all evening, but every time you do that anything with that mouth - shit, sweetheart youâre driving me insane.â His voice was gravelly as he looked at me with desperate eyes across the table. The overly rational part of my brain had shut down completely, and now the part of my mind that had spent hours conjuring vivid scenes of Dean Winchester ravishing me in my entirety had taken the charge. I stood slowly, taking a moment to reason with myself - unsuccessfully of course - before sinking to my knees in front of my chair. I could see Deans strong thighs were spread wide beneath the table so I crawled forwards, across the cold tiles and placed myself between his legs. Resting my palms softly on his thighs I made him flinch at the unexpected contact. He immediately scooted his chair back, allowing a gap for me to poke my head through - his hand instantly acting as a barrier between the edge of the table and my skull. I got comfortable and allowed myself a moment to gaze up at him, to take in the strained furrow in his brow and the parting of his lips. I observed the way his chest rose and fell in apprehensive breaths, and the way his free hand clenched into a fist on his thigh - like he was so desperate yet so scared to touch me.
â(Y/n)-â
âDean,â I spoke softly, slowly running my hands up his thighs - delicate palms against rough denim, âyouâre a smart boy - you know I wouldnât do something I didnât want to do. So please, donât say I donât have to do this.â
Dean released a shaky breath the moment my fingers unclasped his jeans. I tugged them down slightly with his help, just enough so I could dip my hand into his boxers and wrap my fingers around his half-hard length. The moment my skin touched his, his head lolled back and his eyes fluttered closed with a breathy moan on his lips.
âFuckâŠâ
I gently pulled him from his confines, coming face to face with the cock Iâd literally dreamt of again and again. I took the scene in, committing to memory the sharp outline of his jaw and the way his long lashes rested on his lightly-freckled cheeks. The way that, every time he breathed in, I could see his defined muscle tone through the thin fabric of his shirt; and with every small caress that my fingers made against his length, it made his fingers twitch and teeth clench. I licked my lips before leaning in and took his tip into my mouth, not giving him a chance to finish sucking in air through his teeth before I plunged his entire length down my throat.Â
âOh FUCK.â
His hands flew to my hair, fingers gripping tight as they loosened strands from the messy bun, causing them to fall around my face. Heâd lifted his head to look down at me, pupils blown as he pulled his bottom lip between his teeth. He looked nothing more than enthralled. Infatuated. Entranced. I moved my head up and down, up and down, again and again to a steady rhythm, pressing my tongue to the underside of his now rock-hard cock to trace every vein and nerve-ending.
âShit, (Y/n), I didnât know you could suck cock, like, at all⊠howâre you sâfuckinâ goodâŠâ his voice was breathless as he continued to grip my hair, his head flopping to the side as pleasure started to overcome his senses. I released him with a small âpopâ, wrapping my fingers around him and smearing the warm mixture of saliva and precum from tip to base.
âDespite everything I told you earlier, Dean, Iâm not a virgin - and this certainly isnât my first rodeo,â my voice came out more sultry than Iâd expected and I could feel Dean tremble beneath my palms.
âFuck, I wish Iâd known that sooner,â I chewed on my bottom lip, quickly becoming addicted to the way he writhed at my touch. The way he moaned and gripped my hair tighter when I sucked him back into my mouth was like pure ecstasy, my insides heating up and throbbing with an ache of familiar arousal. Like a thirst that could only be satisfied by him. By tasting him, feeling him on my tongue and drinking in every sound that passed his plush parted lips. The sensation of my glasses slipping down my nose as I sped up my ministrations had me reaching to push them back up, but not before Dean beat me to it. With the rough pad of his thumb he pushed on the plastic bridge, his palm and fingers pressed to my flushed cheek in the most tender, almost heart wrenching caress. I thought my heart might stop when he tilted my face up to his; lustful eyes burning into mine with a vehemence Iâd never encountered. I stopped in my tracks, all actions ceased as the spell heâd somehow put me under wouldnât let me look away.Â
âIf you keep going like that darlinâ this whole thing is gonna be over before you know it,â his voice was raspy, a rawness to it from the harsh breaths and ragged moans that had been pulled from his throat. He slowly pulled his cock from my spit-slick lips and grasped it loosely, giving himself a few lazy pumps whilst his other hand never left my face. He stared down at me, taking a few moments as though he was committing the sight of me, knelt between his knees with flushed cheeks and swollen lips to memory. Once it seemed that memory was locked away in the depths of his mind, he grasped me by the arm and pulled me effortlessly into his lap, his fingers almost bruising against my skin. Immediately I felt him, in his entirety, press against me with the heat and wetness seeping through my jeans and past my panties. This time when our eyes met, there was a mutual desperation; a need to consume each other and to feel every inch of his heated skin against mine. He pulled me frantically down to him and crashed his lips against mine.Â
Some people describe their first kiss with someone like butterflies in their stomach, or fireworks exploding all around them. That wasnât at all what this was like. Kissing Dean Winchester was different - it was wild and untamed - and describing this experience in such a mundane way would be like adding water to a top-shelf whiskey. Kissing Dean Winchester was like driving the impala at one thirty with the roar of the engine drowning out the rest of the world. It was like trying to ride a wild mustang without a saddle, or daring to stand on the highest peak on Earth with nothing to tie you down. It was exhilarating in the most dangerous way imaginable - and I was now officially a thrill seeker.Â
The warm taste of the beer on his tongue and the masculine scent of old leather and cologne was pulling me under. Breathing no longer mattered as long as his mouth was on mine and his fingers were in my hair, now tugging the bobble out and throwing it to the floor. As my hair tumbled free he grabbed under my thighs and stood effortlessly, moving me from his lap to the edge of the table without his lips leaving mine. I winced slightly as the corners and several books and the laptop jabbed into my rear and I fumbled to move everything aside, failing when I refused to unlock our lips. Deans patience was non-existent and with one sweep of his strong arm everything tumbled to the floor - including the laptop. I threw the remaining books from underneath me down to join them, no longer caring for their wellbeing. Before I could pull Dean back in - to allow him to do whatever the fuck he wanted to do to me - he hastily pulled off my boots and tugged down my jeans, throwing every item to the growing pile of chaos beside us. I discarded my sweater and top, but before I let his fingers touch my bra I wanted nothing more than to return the favour.Â
âI guess you can forget about that whole ânever seeing me shirtlessâ thing, huh?â he smirked through the sexual fog, not waiting for a reply as his lips hungrily found mine again, his own top falling to the floor.Â
âShut up Winchester. Now are you gonna fuck me or wh- OH FUCK-â
Two thick fingers crept under my panties and plunged into me with zero hesitation, curling up and stroking the sensual cushion deep within my core with skillful precision.Â
âOh yeah? You want me to fuck you?â Even with my face now buried in the crook of his neck, I could hear the smirk in his voice, the tormenting tone going straight to my brain.
âY-yes- fuck- please,â my knees twitched either side of him, squeezing at his hips with every push of his fingers. I gripped his shoulders tight, nails indenting his skin as I leant back to look at him better. Seeing the beads of sweat on his chest and brow alongside the raw, carnal desire in his eyes could have undone me there and then. He frowned in disapproval when I moved to remove my glasses, the fingers that were just inside me now wrapped forcefully around my wrist.
âWhat dâya think youâre doing?â straight away I knew his growling question left no room for negotiation.
âI was just-â
âThe glasses stay on.â
âTo the end?â
ââTil I say you can take them off.â
I did as I was told, moving my hand to grip the soft strands on the back of his neck, softly dragging my nails over his scalp and drawing a shiver from his spine and a groan from his lungs. He pulled me against him, crushing his lips against mine one more time. He swiftly pulled away and I leant back on my hands, both of us taking a moment to drink each other in - to bask in lascivious glory. I pulled my bottom lip between my teeth and looked up at him through my lashes, the lenses of my glasses starting to fog around the edges. Another deep moan rumbled from his chest as his heated gaze stayed locked to mine.
âI canât wait any longer now that youâve looked at me like that. Fuck.â
With a large hand gripping the soft flesh of my thigh he pulled my underwear to one side and lined himself up, slowly sinking in. Blissful moans harmonised between us, the rawness of him stretching me was unlike anything Iâd ever experienced and my quivering thighs wrapped around him, pushing him to the hilt. He secured his large hands on the soft flesh of my hips and held me in place as he slowly withdrew. I could feel him; feel every ridge and vein drag out and then in, out and in, over my most sensitive, intimate, area. The slick sounds of our intimacy began to echo around the room as he picked up speed, strong thighs working at a feverish pace. With every thrust he pushed against that one spot that made my legs jerk and eyes water, my arms almost giving out underneath me as the table rattled beneath my weight. With the ferocity of his pounding and the heightened sensitivity heâd curated between my legs only moments before, we both knew that neither of us would last long. The sounds of his ragged breaths and throaty moans alone had me clenching around him already, and I know my constricting muscles already had his hips stuttering as I sucked him in with every thrust.
âFuck (Y/n)- Youâre so fuckinâ tight-â
I chewed on my bottom lip as his desperate eyes met mine.
âOh yeah? Well I feel like youâre cock is in my fucking ribcage- oh fuck-â
He slipped one hand between us, his large palm resting on my lower belly as his thumb drew fast circles around my clit. The immediate contact on my bundle of nerves had my whole body quivering, the knot of an impending climax already starting to twist tighter and tighter in the depths of my core. The way that Dean fucked me into the motel room table was something that I would be able to feel deep in my soul for the rest of my life - my body and entire nervous system having never been worked in such a feral way before. Dean dropped forward and crushed my body into his - one large strong arm wrapped around my trembling body and kept me pressed against him as his head dropped to the crook of my neck. Soft lips pressed hot kisses against my shoulder, teeth gently nibbling the soft flesh as the coil wound and wound, the wave of orgasmic bliss rising higher and higher as my mind emptied, leaving behind only one thought.
Dean.
He was all consuming - all I could see, taste and smell. All I could feel. Oh God could I feel him; driving me to the brink of pure bliss as he frantically sped up - desperate to seek his own undoing as well as my own. One⊠two⊠three more fervid thrusts and the peak heâd helped me ascend to shattered around me as I practically screamed his name, the white-hot euphoria scorching my insides as I clamped like a vice around him.Â
âOh shit- (Y/n) I canât- fuck-â
I grabbed the back of his head and pushed his mouth to mine as he came undone, spilling inside me as he worked through his own white-hot euphoria.Â
The kiss we shared evolved from hot and needy to soft and wanting - the sensation of hot cum running down the inside of my thigh and cooling against my skin being the only thing to pull me away. Dean continued to lean over me for a moment, looking down at me with an expression that told me he had so much he wanted to say. Instead, he looked down at his release now starting to pool on the floor beneath us, then to the books and laptop that had been thrown across the floor before turning back to face me with the most devilish grin on his face.
âYou know that this mess is all your fault, right?â
I scoffed.
âMy fault? How is it my fault?â
âBecause, sweetheartâŠâ he tucked a strand of hair behind my ear and pushed lightly on the plastic bridge sitting on my nose.
âYou put on on those fucking glasses.â
--------------------------------------------------
Taglist: @roseblue373 @hobby27 @calibootsgirl @suckitands33 @jackles010378 @lyarr24 @autistic-gothic @wattpaduser200 @spndeanwinchesterlvr @mxtansy @libby99hb @magssteenkamp @redmaro86 @slut-for-evans-stan @spookyysinsanity @localjisung
#dean winchester#dean winchester smut#dean x y/n#dean x you#dean winchester x reader#dean winchester x you#dean x female!reader#dean x reader#dean winchester x reader smut#dean winchester x you smut#supernatural reader insert#supernatural one shot#dean winchester one shot#dean smut#supernatural smut#smut
5K notes
·
View notes
Text
to believe | sjy
pairing: ex!jake x fem!reader genres: angst, smut, fluff wc: 15.4k+
ê° đ
warnings ê± :Â argument, swearing, mention of cheating, fights, brief description of a physical fight, unprotected sex (don't do it, do it safely), nipple play, cumming inside. lmk if i've forgotten anything.
ê° đ
synopsis ê± :Â you have the mission of being godmother at your brother's wedding, but the only obstacle is sharing it with his best friend, and your ex-bf who you're sure cheated on you, jake sim.
ê° đ
notes ê± :Â one of the many stories i have saved for my jake. it was supposed to be short, but i can't, i always get carried away writing it! i hope you enjoy it.
ê° đ
masterlist ê±
âI don't believe itâ you said, a sigh of weariness and discontent coming from your lips when your brother's voice informed you of this.
You had known that he and Josie would get married from the moment they got engaged in their last year of high school. Heeseung was completely in love with your best friend and you, being a great person, encouraged the two of them to get together. But what frustrated you wasn't the wedding itself, or the responsibility you had been given as a bridesmaid, but the fact that it would all be shared with Jake Sim, Josie's brother and, ironically, your ex-boyfriend.
It would be a blessing to have his friendship after the two of you broke up because, after all, both families would be united one way or another. But the break-up hadn't been pleasant at all and, after a year apart, any interaction between you and Jake was cause for friction. If you were in a cartoon, sparks would surely fly from the two of you every time you were in the same room.
âCome on Y/n, Jake is my best friend and Josie's brotherâ Heeseung sighed too, putting on a pout that almost had you convinced of the proposal âIt was obvious that he would be best man with you at our wedding.â
Your brother was right and you knew it from the start. Since before you and Jake broke up. When Heeseung and Josie talked about marriage in college, saying that the two of you would be the best man because it was perfect that you were both also dating. A coincidence that life provided. Your best friend dating your brother and you dating your best friend's brother. But since things weren't that simple for you, only Josie was happy now.
âCan't you and she, I don't know, just have more than one best man?â your eyes wandered over to your brother who was trying to maintain a relaxed posture, his body slumped nonchalantly on the sofa at your parents' house. Where you and he got together every weekend for lunch or just to pass the time in your hectic lives without any contact during the week âI'd love to be a bridesmaid to Jungwon, for example.â
âHe'll be one of the godparents, of courseâ Heeseung smiled at you, although his gaze was on the large television that was playing some program that your brother could barely pay attention to âBut your mission and Jake's are much greater because, well⊠You'll be our witnesses.â
It was a more than important title. Witnessing their union from the beginning, seeing them sign the papers and then exchange vows, it was all so beautiful.
âThat's not the problemâ he sighed so loudly that it was only at that moment that Heeseung stopped staring at the television so that he could look in your direction âIt's that I'm going to have to go after practically everything for you and Josie together with Jake.â
âA great opportunity for you two to talk and finally understand each otherâ he said without thinking, regretting it at the exact moment he felt a pillow fly at his head âOuch! What the fuck, Y/n?â
âYou're defending him again!â
âI'm just telling you to really listen to himâ Heeseung protected himself from another pillow to the head, holding it in the air before you could even hit him âJake wouldn't be able to do that. Even more so with you.â
Even more so with you. Why did your brother insist on defending Jake? As if you were dumb enough to have gone to meet him in the locker room before the friendly match and, unfortunately, found a bra in his locker that wasn't yours. You didn't even wear pink bows on the bulge, it was too cute. Only someone wore that kind of outfit, showing off to everyone who had the chance. So it was easy to associate Jake, the captain of the university soccer team, with the slutty cheerleader you grew to hate even more.
Both Heeseung and Josie were forbidden to talk about it, to defend Jake in your presence, or to make you talk to him after you decided to end it all. It could have been completely childish of you not to listen to him, to throw your bra at Jake and utter the last words you could, looking deep into those brown eyes you had once come to love.
âI hate that I loved youâ Jake didn't think it would hurt more than the accusation of betrayal, even though he hadn't even had the chance to say anything. Your voice was like a deep cut, bigger than any injury he had once felt playing soccer.
After that day you saw Jake Sim as the biggest traitor in history and the person you had all the bad feelings for. Even if the words had to be a little more restrained in the presence of family or when you decided to omit all the bad things that happened, saying that the break-up was because you wanted to take a trip abroad. The trip happened, and spending almost eight months in Madrid was able to clear your head.
Being away from Jake and everything that involved him and your family â which was now his too â helped you to cope a little with the distance. But you came back so quickly with the news of your brother's wedding that the last few months since your arrival in Madrid have all ended in arguments, or you and Jake swearing at each other until you can't take it anymore.
You could say you felt physical pain just being in his presence because you knew it was inevitable that you wouldn't have a single argument. Did he feel entitled to feel resentful and hurt by something he had done? And did Jake get irritated by the way you got angry without even giving him a chance to explain properly? Jake would never do that, but your mind and your eyes told you otherwise. You didn't want to listen to him, you didn't want to live with him. Perhaps living in Madrid after your brother's wedding could be an almost real thought, although you would never be able to leave your family in the long term.
âY/nâ Heeseung called out, taking you out of your thoughts as he held your hand. The gentle, comforting touch that only your older brother could provide âI know this situation will always be bad for you and him, butââ he squeezed your hand lightly âCan you do this for me and Josie? Please?â
The pleading voice was an extremely low game that Heeseung played with you to get what he wanted, but at that moment you felt vulnerability. You felt that he really wanted you to accept because it went beyond anything between you and Jake. It wasn't on purpose that he and Josie had done this, after all, you and Jake were the brothers of the bride and groom anyway. You both had to be at that wedding one way or another.
Squeezing Heeseung's hands back, you let out a low sigh. Your eyes wandered over his face as you saw hope run through the boy's eyes. It didn't seem like he was older than you and about to get married.
âAll right, I'll tryâ you said at last, watching Heeseung's smile widen even more.
âThanks Y/n, you're the best sister in the worldâ he bent down to kiss your cheek, releasing your hands to get up from the sofa.
âI'm the only sister you've got, asshole. I have to be the best!â you protested.
Heeseung's laughter echoed down the corridor to the kitchen, where he had disappeared. Surely he was going after some dessert to share with you while jabbering on about some wedding details he hadn't stopped talking about for a second since you showed up.
Your break-up wasn't an entirely amicable affair between the two of you. Your mind and heart were convinced that Jake had cheated on you, although you had never seen him get so worked up trying to explain that it would never happen. His hands gripping his hair as he paced the room, stuttering or not finishing a sentence because you didn't want to hear it. Part of you knew that denial came because you didn't want to hear anything from him and have to go back on what you saw, but another part still kept the image of that pink bow bra inside his locker in the changing room vivid.
But for your family, the break-up had gone smoothly. You both agreed to make up some excuse, after all, you'd still have to deal with each other for the rest of your lives because now Heeseung and Josie were getting married. There was no way you could avoid Jake or he could avoid you. His closest friends knew what had happened, two of Jake's best friends besides Heeseung and Susan, your other best friend along with Josie. Even though your anger towards him still remained, you didn't want others to think the wrong thing about you and Jake. Sparing you explanations or embarrassment. Even sparing you from remembering that day.
Living in a small â and false â harmony while being close to your family or anyone else who didn't know what actually happened. That's why the two of you were together in the party store at that moment.
Being appointed best man was something Jake knew would happen, ever since Heeseung confessed that he was going to propose to Josie a month before they finished university. Jake didn't want to be selfish by seeing his best friend in love while he was on the brink of ruin because, in addition to breaking up with you, he had just learned that you were going to another country. Maybe that was a good thing after all. Having you away would help him think and even try to find some way to get you to listen to him. Jake wouldn't give up on making you listen to him, even if it took years, he would make you hear the whole truth.
Looking around with a small sigh, he returned to the present moment. Staring at some baskets that he couldn't tell the material of. Wicker, bamboo or straw? Were those ropes really woven together, one by one?
âWhat have you got on your list?â your voice snapped him out of his reverie and made Jake look quickly in your direction. Trying to concentrate on your serious face, his glasses perched on the tip of his nose as he looked down at his notes.
He reached for the piece of paper in the back pocket of his jeans, opening what was already all but crumpled. While you had a notebook between your fingers, he had a piece of paper.
Typical Jake Sim, he knew you'd say that out loud if you were still together. And if you were together, you'd roll your eyes playfully and walk over to him, pick up the piece of paper, and throw it away, because his notes would be in your notebook too. And that would make you lean over and kiss him on the lips ever so sweetly, mumbling something about how Jake was a bit disorganized about it and that Josie had the craziest big brother in the world.
âJakeâ you called him, almost whispering.
âSorryâ he took a deep breath, trying to focus on what was happening. Rolling his eyes at the words Josie had said a few hours ago, he hastily jotted them down on the piece of paper he was holding âI have some fabrics she asked me for and about three types of flowers for the bouquet and table arrangements.â
âReally?â you walked over to him, leaning close enough to see the piece of paper. Jake held his breath for a few seconds so as not to inhale your perfume, but if he didn't breathe, he would surely die. Then you slowly let out your breath while looking at the top of your head âDo they both think we're ceremonialists?â
âMaybe soâ Jake said quietly âbut from what Josie said, it's because they both trust us so much that we chose this so carefully.â
They were words she would say. Trusting you and Jake to choose the small details without giving them into the hands of someone she's never seen. Even more so Josie, who had always planned her wedding down to the smallest detail since she was fifteen, back when she hadn't even dreamed of falling in love with Lee Heeseung.
âWhich of these three do you think is Josie's favorite?â your eyes searched Jake's after reading the paper. At that moment, neither of you wanted to face each other with such intensity, so close together. But you didn't know that approaching him to read the list would result in being so close. Walking away abruptly at that moment would have been rude, although you had never cared whether it was like that or not with Jake.
He looked at you. Really looked. As he had done ever since he'd seen you for the first time, and it made you feel strange inside. You wanted to think that maybe it was the nervousness of being alone with him after such a long time, being assigned to tasks like being a bridesmaid.
âDahlia?â he said.
âWas that a question?â you asked him back, raising an eyebrow when you saw the uncertainty in Jake's voice.
âCome on, she's your best friend.â
âAnd she's your sister.â
âSo what?â Jake asked âI don't know what her favorite flower is, Y/n. I don't even know about flowers.â
A big lie, Jake understood. In parts. When the two of you started dating, he did a lot of research on the internet about flowers and their meanings, finding out about the orchid and what it represented. When he bought you your first bouquet of orchids, reciting why he had done it, that was when Jake saw you cry with joy and love for the first time since you two started dating.
And it was from that day on that you both called the orchid the flower of your relationship.
âYes, you doâ you whispered so that he wouldn't hear, you didn't want him to hear. For him to understand that you were thinking practically the same thing as him.
Having that moment of a few hours without a single argument was the result of many requests and practically an engaged couple begging you and Jake not to jump on each other for the sake of the wedding that was yet to take place. Josie knew you well enough to know your limits around Jake, just as she also knew how her brother would cope with being in your presence for so long. It had to be perfect, and it wouldn't be something from your and Jake's old relationship that would affect what she had always dreamed of.
âI'll find the decorations for the tables, can you see the flowers?â Jake just agreed with you as he continued down the aisle of baskets and trinkets for flower arrangements. Agreeing with what you were saying was something he had been practicing over the weeks as he was assigned to spend more time than necessary by your side.
Sometimes the two of you would go out with Heeseung and Josie, looking for things related to the wedding and everything that could be used for the big party. Jake saw how much Heeseung agreed with his fiancée and, with subtle comments, he managed to change her mind when she didn't agree with something. This could be the big key to why their relationship had worked so well from the start.
Where did I go wrong? Jake felt selfish for thinking so, knowing exactly where he went wrong. He didn't insist enough on a conversation, he didn't make you listen to him the way you should have and, as a result, almost a year went by with him being set up as a liar in your head. That's why he decided not to argue and just agreed when you asked or gave your opinion. He agreed with almost everything because he knew how good you were at decorating, not to mention the fact that he knew that you and Josie had talked about marriage for hours when you were still Jake's girlfriend. He remembers nights when he would play with Heeseung while the two of you watched dress fittings, giving your opinions on which one you would like to wear on the big day.
While his sister opted for more flashy things, with some stones and sparkles in the veil, you always chose the simple, strapless dress that accentuated the curves of your body and without too much lace because you didn't want something so big. This simplicity made Jake's eyes sparkle because he could clearly see you in a simple dress. Although all the beauty would turn to your face, no matter what you were wearing.
âFlowers, Jake. Focus on the flowersâ he said to himself as he pushed a trolley through the aisles of the store. Memorizing the ones Josie had told him about as an option and going to where they all were.
He had to concentrate on that or he would go mad because there was no way not to have nostalgic thoughts when you were around without fighting with him. These moments were rare, but when they happened, Jake knew he wasn't the only one who thought like that.
Looking at the labels naming each flower, he wondered if it was really necessary. Whether Josie would be angry if he chose any of them instead of the three on that piece of paper because they were just flowers. A color that wasn't too flashy â the only thing Jake could think of was that his sister wanted everything in rosĂ© and champagne tones â and the flowers could be light pink or white. If he got one of those colors, but it wasn't the one she wanted, would his sister be happy? He didn't want to risk that much, so he sighed heavily in search of a dahlia or any of the other two that were named.
Luckily, the white dahlias weren't that far away, and Jake managed to get just the right amount to show Josie and see if that was what she was going to take. Apart from taking a small bouquet, he would probably have to go back with Heeseung and pick up countless flowers just to put on the tables of so many guests he didn't even know his sister had invited.
Rolling his eyes at some of them, Jake gathered a good amount into a clumsy bouquet but organized enough to take to the cashier and pay. His eyes rolled over a few flowers until they stopped: the orchids. He didn't want his heart to race so much that he had to bite his lower lip to suppress a smile. Jake could go on for years without talking to you, but it would never leave his mind.
âYou're an idiot, Jake Simâ he hated having the habit of talking to himself while he was in such an internal dilemma but taking just one orchid and hiding it under the bouquet of dahlias was necessary at that moment. He didn't know why he'd done it, but he knew he had to.
âHave you got the flowers yet?â your voice sounded a little louder than usual, at the exact moment when Jake put the flowers into the trolley and looked down the corridor in his direction. He just nodded, watching you approach with some things he couldn't even tell you what they were. Maybe not even you. But they were all named according to what the bride and groom wanted, so all was well and good.
âDo we need anything else?â Jake asked after you'd put everything in the trolley, not even bothering to check that the amount of flowers he'd picked up was correct. This made him sigh with relief, so he wouldn't have to explain why he'd picked up an orchid out of the blue.
âI think we got everything in this storeâ you said at last, turning away from Jake to look in your notebook and make sure you knew what you were talking about.
He wanted to get out of there as quickly as possible, run to Heeseung, and tell him what was going on. Or even ask his best friend to take his place on the next outing for the wedding stuff. Because if it went on like this, Jake didn't know if he could take it any longer.
The look on Josie's face could only indicate two things: either she was very nervous, or she had done something wrong. And considering that all the women were gathered in the living room of Mrs. Sim's house for the pre-wedding lingerie tea, maybe your friend was just nervous.
Looking at her for a while, you saw her say something to Susan and, when they both agreed on something before telling you, you could certainly suspect the second thought. This made your heart race because, if something had gone wrong, it was your job as godmother to fix it.
âWhat happened?â you quickly asked when the two of them approached, Susan looking around before glancing at you and then at Josie.
âJosie needs to tell you somethingâ she said, and then you saw your sister-in-law and best friend open her mouth to say something, but the sound of the doorbell interrupted her.
Some women were arriving, Josie's friends from work, other family friends that Mrs. Sim and her mother had made a point of inviting. Everything would be very welcome if it meant getting things from people before her wedding, after all, Josie wouldn't deny any gifts. She also called some friends from college, and for some reason, your mind clicked so far ahead that you only realized what was happening when you saw her walk through the door.
Your stomach did such a somersault that you almost threw up the lunch you'd eaten with Susan before getting things ready for Josie at her mother's house. You thought the last time you'd see Stacy Joseph, the owner of the pink bow bra, would be in that hallway where you threw it at her and nearly broke her nose when you went to make amends. The last contact between the two of you was with Susan standing between you and her after you punched her in the nose, watching her bleed while you told her to swallow that stupid fabric. After that, you never saw her around the college campus, near anyone you knew or, worse, near Jake.
âY/n, Iââ
âGirls!â even her voice made you nauseous, and you wanted to ask yourself over and over again why Jake had chosen Stacy Joseph to be the pivot of the break-up and the reason for the betrayal between the two of you.
You remained silent the whole time she entered the house, left the gift package in the middle of the living room, and walked in the direction the three of you were heading. As a little dejavĂș, Susan stood next to you, almost between the two of you when Stacy got close enough to greet Josie.
âI'm so happy you're getting married, that's so coolâ she hugged Josie so tightly, that you wanted to rip her out of her best friend's arms.
âThank you for comingâ she just replied, letting go of the hug and looking straight at you.
Stacy didn't say your name or Susan's, but the cordiality meant that she just nodded at you both in mute greeting.
âY/nâ Josie called your name, but your head was spinning and you looked like you were going to throw up. Her voice lingered in the back of your mind as you broke away from your friends and ran to Mrs. Sim's kitchen.
This couldn't be happening, not to you. For almost a year you had managed to forget what her face looked like, her voice, and even her presence, focusing your anger only on Jake because he was the only one you were around all the time. Now seeing her in front of you again, being invited to your sister-in-law's pre-wedding party⊠No, that was too much for you.
âLook Y/n, listen to meâ Josie entered the kitchen, followed by Susan who looked at the two of you and then towards the entrance to the room, fearing that Stacy might follow them and, who knows, start an unnecessary argument âI heard she was coming a few hours ago, and it was because of your brother!â
âWhat do you mean?â you didn't want to look at her now, you didn't want to show how much this affected you. So your gaze went to the counter where your mother had placed drinks to be served when all the women had arrived. You didn't mind opening a bottle with the highest proof, grabbing a glass, and filling it halfway before downing it. âShit.â
âY/nâ Josie was on the other side of the counter, right in front of you. Susan was next to her, looking at you too. âI didn't know she was Haechan's girlfriend because he never told us, and since Heeseung invited him because he was on the soccer team⊠He asked if he could invite his girlfriend andââ she took a deep breath, feeling her eyes burn at how shaken you had been. When you filled the glass for the second time, Josie quickly took it and drank, just like you had done a few seconds before, feeling the burning sensation go down your throat. âHaechan didn't say her name or anything, otherwise I would have made an excuse.â
âNoâ you quickly said. âIt's okay, it's justââ
âBesides, Jake didn't even cheat on you, but you don't want to hear that right nowâ Susan took the glass from Josie's hand, looking in your direction with a raised eyebrow. You felt your whole body ache just thinking about starting that debate again, how tired and upset you were to see your best friends siding with a traitor like Jake. No one had seen what you saw in his locker, so why not believe you?
âWe found you threeâ Mrs. Sim entered the kitchen with an unusual excitement. She smiled at the three of you and didnât notice the strange atmosphere that was there before she arrived âHave you gone to taste our drinks yet?â she laughed when she saw the glass in Josieâs hand and the open bottle in front of you. Your mother came in right after with one of her arms linked through Jakeâs. And thatâs when your legs went completely weak.
âWhat are you doing here, honey? Itâs a women-only partyâ Mrs. Sim said as soon as she saw her son enter the kitchen with your mother. She seemed to be babbling about something he hadnât even heard yet.
âI came to get my wallet and car keysâ Jake said, but his gaze was on you the whole time. You felt that he was, even though you had looked away so as not to look at him at that moment.
âThen you can leave, there will only be womenâs talk hereâ your mother let go of his arm for a second, âThings about panties, drinks, bras, and stuff.â
She and your mother laughed, you saw Josieâs smile slowly appear, as she searched for your gaze.
âAbout bras? Then Jake can stayâ you murmured, âHe loves that.â
Oh, no. It had been too long since the two of you had had an argument since the wedding preparations began. You looked up at him, seeing that Jake seemed unreadable with that expression. He had definitely seen Stacy in the living room because your mother was there welcoming people, so he must have seen her. Or worse, he must have heard Haechan talking about her when he arrived for the boys' party that was happening simultaneously at your house at that moment.
âI love bras? Is that what you're saying?â Jake scoffed, the sound making your whole body shiver. Josie and Susan looked at the situation nervously, trying to predict the next moves to try to intervene since your mothers were there. It would be the first argument in front of them.
âOf courseâ you smiled falsely, âWith pink bows and everything.â
The sound around happened naturally, people talking loudly and walking from one side to the other. In the other room, it was easy to hear the laughter of the women who were eager to start the party. Your mother and Jake's mother picked up some bottles, paying attention to the two of you who were standing there staring at each other. While Josie, surreptitiously, walked to her brother's side to try to get him out of there.
âI hate brasâ Jake made a small face when his sister approached âYou must know that Y/n, because I took yours off every day.â
âHoly shitâ Susan almost choked on her own saliva as she held back a laugh, even though the mood wasn't conducive to it. But your face was priceless because no one expected that answer from Jake. Not even you.
âWhat?â your mother looked at you two, astonished, although she didnât need to explain to anyone what happened in a relationship. Even more so for as long as it had lasted with you and Jake. You two were adults, above all, and no one would interfere in that.
âSorryâ Jake quickly said, feeling Josieâs hand on his shoulders, gently pushing him out of the kitchen. âHave a good party, girls. See you later!â he felt his cheeks burning, even though he had given you a good answer, it was still in the presence of your mother and his mother, so Jake acted on total impulse.
Of course, he was nervous and scared when he saw Stacy in the living room of his motherâs house. He knew Haechan was dating someone, but no one knew who she was until she showed up. Jake knew he had a lot to tell Heeseung as soon as he got to his house for the boysâ party, but that didnât stop his mind from wandering to the moment the two of you had in the kitchen. If Jake thought that this marriage would be peaceful, even with the problems, now he had just felt that it wasn't.
Three days until the wedding, where Josie and Heeseung would exchange vows, celebrate, and finally become part of the same family. She was so happy to know that her wishes were coming true, especially with someone like Heeseung. Who had always taken care of her since the first moment they were together. So planning and executing every little thing of that party didn't become a tiring job because, in the end, it made up for the joy of both of them.
And that was why you tried to ignore the discomfort in your chest every time you were around Jake â more than usual â after the meeting between the two of you at his parents' house. A whole week passed after that and you tried not to be around him alone for so long, even though you had to hurry to try on the dresses that your sister-in-law had set aside for the bridesmaid.
Going to the wedding dress store had to be a task done by you and Jake, together. But after that, you wanted to avoid him as much as he was trying to avoid you too. So you left your apartment without waiting for his ride, which was happening in the last few moments of every place you two went together. You went into the store and gave the bride's name, saying that there were some spares for you to try on in the color Josie had designated for you. The saleswoman, smiling and attentive, took you to the changing room so you could try it on and see how it would look on your body.
Being covered in a chic, pink, almost silk dress made you feel beautiful and desired. You knew Josie had that kind of taste. It was easy to trust her taste in clothes, but it wouldn't be an effort to try them on just to make her happy. Maybe you would keep the first one you put on anyway, but since there were five more on the hangers, you would need to put each one on. That way you could tell her why you had chosen one over the other.
âThis way, Mr. Jakeâ the voice of the same saleswoman called down the hallway and you quickly straightened up, adjusting the second dress on your body when you heard footsteps walking in front of your door.
You ran to it and unlocked it, on impulse, just as the saleswoman was opening the door to the dressing room across from yours.
"Y/n? Are you here yet?" Jake was startled when he looked at you, but his eyes softened enough for him to make eye contact for a few seconds. You just nodded, looking away at the saleswoman.
âSo you two are Josie and Heeseungâs godparents?â she asked.
âYesâ you and Jake said at the same time, her smile widening.
âPerfectâ you said slowly. âMr. Jake, your suits are in there as requested, and Ms. Y/n, did the dresses look good?â
âIâm still trying on the second oneâ you opened the door a little wider to show her. It wasnât the silk of the first dress, but the lace and rhinestone trim gave a perfect glimpse of the curves of your hips. The saleswoman had a fond smile on her face, complimenting how beautiful you looked.
âIt really does look beautifulâ Jake blurted out, taking you and the saleswoman out of the small conversation you had both been having. Only then did he notice that the three of you were still standing in the hallway and that you were still wearing one of the dresses.
Your voice didnât come out as a thank you, but you walked back into the dressing room and closed the door behind you before saying anything to him. Leaning your back against the cold wood and trying to normalize your heartbeat. Why did he have to say that as if nothing was happening?
In the time that followed, you tried to focus your attention on the other dresses and how the colors Josie had chosen were flattering to your skin tone and the color of your eyes. You felt more and more beautiful in each piece that slid over your body, the reflection in the mirror pleasing you more and more, making it practically impossible to choose a single piece that you could definitely choose. Going to the last dress, then, you decided to take off the one you were wearing and slide the fabric over your body.
Another silk, this time a little thinner, but not enough to be transparent. This one could have been designed for you because Josie knew you didn't want anything so flashy. You smiled to yourself after putting on the dress, turning your back to do up the zipper that was the only lock on the piece.
âShit,â you grumbled when you saw it get stuck right at the beginning. âNo, no, noâŠâ despair began to take over your body. You couldnât take off that dress or pull up the zipper and risk ripping something so expensive. Your mind raced to call the saleswoman quickly. She would be the only one who could help you with that zipper and would even be a good company to give advice to others who had doubts.
So yes, thatâs what you would do. Holding the front of the dress with the straps hanging loosely on your shoulders, you walked to the door and unlocked it. Only sticking your head out and looking for the saleswoman. Not a soul passed by that hallway and you started to get a little scared because the only sound was footsteps coming from downstairs, where people were walking back and forth through the store.
The only sound that took you away from your thoughts of taking off your dress and giving up on trying it on was the click of the lock on the door in front of you. Jake had messy hair, adjusting his fly and the first four buttons of his white shirt open.
âY/n?â he called you, finishing closing the zipper and running a hand through his hair to try to fix it a little. âI heard your door opening and I thought you were leaving, butâ Are you okay?â he looked at you as soon as he stopped talking.
You stayed quiet for a few seconds, admiring how handsome he looked even in that sloppy and unkempt way. You imagined how clumsy Jake was with formal and elegant clothes, especially since you were the one helping him with the tie knots since you had to learn because of Heeseung and your father.
âI thinkâŠâ you sighed, not wanting to say it out loud. He almost scolded himself for knowing you so well and knowing that something was wrong, so he walked the few steps from his door to yours, stopping in front of you âI think my dress zipper got stuck.â
âDo you need help?â he asked. You nodded slowly and, without saying anything else, let him enter your dressing room and closed the door right after.
Jake could see how organized you were even with a larger amount of dresses than he had to try on pants and shirts. Everything was perfectly folded, some even already hanging on the hangers while the pants he tried on were on the floor and only the blazers were on the hanger because he couldnât find a single one that he thought looked nice on him.
âOkay, what do I need to do?â he turned towards you, noticing the way you were holding the front of your dress for dear life.
âCan you try to pull up the zipper? Otherwise, we can call the saleswomanâ you turned your back to him and Jake had to hold his breath a little. The amount of skin was too much for him to see, even though it wasn't an unfamiliar sight for him. But after so long having this kind of contact was something Jake wasn't expecting.
âOkay, okay,â he said more to himself, walking towards you when you threw all your hair to the side, leaving your back completely bare to him.
Jakeâs fingers trembled uselessly when the tip of his index finger and thumb touched the zipper. Nothing more than that, because he didnât want to cross any boundaries.
âItâs not going to happen,â he said after forcing it a little, the zipper not moving.
âTry again, pleaseâ you asked. âThis dress is perfect and I think your sister chose it because maybe it suits me better than the others.â
He didnât want to admit that yes, that dress was perfect on you. Even if you werenât dressed properly and you still had to close the zipper to see the final result, Jake didnât need that to compliment you or find you beautiful in any outfit. Taking another step forward, Jake thought he could dare and listen to his instincts, or he simply wouldnât have a chance of doing that anymore. So he muted any other voice in his head and listened only to what his heart was telling him to do. With his free hand, Jake grabbed your waist under the thin fabric of your dress. He had touched your skin before under some silk that you had worn during the years of your relationship, but nothing compared to the dress you were wearing now.
You tried to hold back any sound that might come out of your mouth as his hand slowly squeezed your hip, while the other tried to pull up the zipper of your dress. Jake seemed focused on that action that bent over enough for his breath to hit the back of your neck. His eyes traveled up the length of your back and saw your skin crawl with that simple gesture.
So he still had some effect on you.
It was too much information for him to process. Jake affects your body, the closeness of the two of you, and the even heavier atmosphere between you after Stacy's arrival. It was too much for him to process. Jake could never do anything rational under pressure, so he knew it would have a drastic consequence, he wouldn't stop trying.
Turning your body and pressing it against his chest, you didn't have a chance to swear at him. There was not even time to speak a single syllable when Jake's lips quickly sought yours. It was like an act of returning home, where he already knew the way and only needed those few seconds to have his lips on yours.
If Jake was being irrational about the whole thing, you weren't going to be the only thinking person or get in the way of what was happening. Part of you wanted it, although the other part of you disagreed with having the tip of Jake's tongue poking at your lower lip. With a low moan, you gave way and that was all he needed. To tangle his tongue in yours, to taste you in his mouth again while his hands ran down your hips and gripped your body as if his life depended on it.
Maybe it did because to go a whole time like that without feeling his lips, without sliding your teeth across his bottom lip or having your hands wrapped in his hair. Your body pressed against his while you moaned low against his mouth every time the kiss intensified. Jake missed that as much as you did. And seeing how intensely you were giving yourself to him was more than an answer to what he needed.
Walking towards the nearest table, careful not to ruin his clothes on the way, Jake leaned you against the wood without interrupting the kiss in the process. He didn't want to pull his mouth away from yours and even though you both needed air, he wanted to be able to breathe the air from your mouth if at all possible. His hands, still on your waist, slid all over your back, still uncovered by the fabric that wouldn't close at all. Thanks for the stuck zipper, he thought, running his hand up your spine until he tangled the fabric of the dress between his fingers.
Jake's mouth parted from yours just then, his forehead still pressed against yours and his eyes slowly opening to search for yours. A silent request as to whether he could go on with it or whether you were sorry and wanted him to leave the room.
Your hands found his and as if to help him, you pulled the loose fabric down your body, revealing your chest as all the silk bunched around your hips. His eyes shone brightly. Jake could tell it had all been worth it just from that sight. Your hands found his hair and he slid his lips down your neck as you spread your legs, beckoning him to snuggle in.
Jake ran his hands up the sides of your body, his thumbs finding your erect nipples and putting a fair amount of pressure there, just as his lips found your earlobe.
âJakeâ you moaned his name, and that sound he missed so much. How slyly you used to moan his name.
âYeah, baby?â he whispered against your skin, his hands gripping your breast a little more firmly before he released his lips from your neck and moved down to your collarbone.
Your voice gradually died away as Jake's mouth descended your skin in slow, wet kisses, his tongue tracing a teasing path down the middle of your breast. His breathing made a point of getting heavy with every line of saliva he left against your skin, the heat building there and intensifying between your legs.
âFuckâ you moaned as his tongue flicked across your nipple, the tip circling a few times before he took it all in his mouth. Sucking and making it even more sensitive with every warm touch of his tongue and the light scrape of his teeth on it. Jake's attention took turns on each of your breasts, leaving enough of a mark for you to remember him when you got dressed for the wedding a few days later. Or when you came home to take a shower, looking at your chest and the amount of hickeys he was leaving.
You arched your back and, with some difficulty, pulled the rest of your dress down to your feet to get rid of the fabric that was now bothering you so much. The amount of clothing was unbearable for you as Jake settled further between your legs, still sucking on your nipples.
âJake, pleaseâ you practically begged him as he looked more and more hungry with his mouth on your nipple. Circling his tongue and letting go with a low, teasing pop, raising his face to meet yours.
âDo you want it as much as I do?â he asked, his voice hoarse and low, his lips red and shiny from the amount of saliva that had been smeared across your breast.
âI want it, very muchâ if he kept teasing you, you'd be pathetic enough to cry out for him and ask him to fuck you right there.
Fortunately Jake understood you so well and you knew he couldn't stand teasing you for so long, even more so with the hunger and thirst he'd been teasing and kissing you with minutes ago. He didn't want to waste any time, lifting his shirt over his head without bothering to remove the buttons, the zipper of his pants came down in seconds and he quickly removed the fabric along with his underwear. Jake didn't want to wait any longer.
He went back between your legs, sliding his hands up and down your thighs. Caressing the soft skin he had felt for so long. Nostalgia washed over him with every touch, going down to your hips to grab the fabric of your panties, throwing them on the floor as quickly as he did his clothes.
âY/n, weââ you kissed his lips, not letting him finish saying anything. You knew Jake would explain himself, say something to try and comfort you from what you'd felt for so long. But the heat of the moment demanded that he just be inside you. And that's what you did. Holding his cock and pumping slowly, you heard Jake moan against your lips, his brow furrowed as you rubbed the head of his cock against your pussy lips to gather the perfect amount of your juices.
Jake arched his hips against your hand, feeling his cock get wet with the union of your arousal and his pre-cum, without having to worry about preparing you or anything. It was also because of the rush you were both in to feel each other, but he wanted to make sure he didn't hurt you, and the way you were calmly taking it all in was driving Jake crazy.
âI don't want to hurt youâ he whispered when you stopped teasing him and stopped rubbing the head of his cock all over your pussy. Jake's cock was already wet enough and you were already more than lubricated, he wasn't going to hurt you.
âYou won't hurt me, I promiseâ you whispered with your lips close to his, without kissing him, waiting for Jake to take the next step between the two of you.
As if it were a communication just by looking, as soon as Jake leaned his forehead against yours, he understood that it had to be done. So you thrust your hips slowly, feeling your entrance suck the head of his cock. Just the tip penetrating you was enough to make you moan, pressing your lips against Jake's and bending your body over the table. He wrapped his arms around you, gripping your body between his arms, afraid that you would run away at that moment. Afraid that everything you were both experiencing would be thrown away and that maybe it was Jake's dream, where he dozed off in the fitting room opposite yours, idealizing what was happening.
But no, it was all real. He was slowly penetrating you, gripping your body between his arms and feeling your arms around his neck, as if you needed to steady yourself just by hugging him.
Reaching the bottom, with his cock completely inside you, Jake didn't let go of your embrace. He moved his hips slowly, withdrawing his cock and leaving just the tip inside you, only to return slowly and intensely until his cock was inside your pussy. The movement of your hips became constant, and the sound of the moans that the two of you shared in whispers gave the moment even more intensity. Jake was careful not to go too fast and hard because the way you squeezed his cock showed how sensitive your pussy was to receiving him back.
âYou don't knowâŠâ Jake sucked a moan from your mouth, pressing his forehead to yours when a particularly intense movement hit you, making the head of his cock touch your spongy spot and your walls tighten around it. Jake could have sworn he was going to come right then and there, but he had to stop himself, he didn't want to finish yet âYou don't know how much I've missed this⊠How much I've missed you.â
Your fingernails scratched Jake's shoulder blades, making the thrust forceful as his skin burned a little. You bit his lower lip, stopping yourself from moaning loudly so that the whole store could hear the two of you. Your legs wrapped even tighter around Jake's moving hips, giving him no room to pull away for even a second.
âI've missed you, Jakeâ your hips were now moving along with his, but slowly, while Jake was intensifying his thrusts, wanting you to feel every moment of his cock moving in and out of you. Withdrawing his cock slowly and putting it back in just as slowly, going hard only at the end so that the head of his cock touched your cervix or you felt every rise in your walls with his size âI've missed you so much.â
Jake could cum with the intensity of your gaze, your fucked-up expression, and how you moaned his name as you said those things. He knew that anything you did while he had his cock buried in you was a reason for him to come, and he didn't want to hold back any longer.
With a silent request, Jake kissed your lips and moved his hands down between your bodies in the small space you left between the two of you. His fingers soon found your clitoris and he circled it at the same speed as his cock moved in and out of you.
You could see stars with the double sensation, your body writhing between Jake's arms as his thrusts began to pick up speed. He was close to cumming and you weren't much different, you knew him well enough for that. You both knew each other's bodies that well.
âI need you to cum with me, pleaseâ Jake asked against your lips, his cock driving in a little harder, along with his fingers circling your clit a little faster.
Without the strength to say anything, you just agreed and continued to move your hips so that you were in sync with Jake and what he was doing. Your hands grabbed his hair, keeping Jake's mouth close enough to yours and catching his tongue between your lips. Sucking on his tongue with the same intensity as your pussy swallowed his cock was divine, Jake was losing count of how many times he came with this sensation. Being swallowed by your pussy and your mouth sucking his tongue just like you used to suck his cock.
He could hear you moaning his name in a muffled way, your lips around the tip of his tongue and your pussy swallowing more and more of him. A precise circle on your clit along with his cock moving in and out was enough to make the knot in your stomach burst. Your pussy convulsed, and your walls fluttered around his entire length, cumming all over Jake's cock. The heat of your pussy, the oozing of your cum, and the way you moaned his name over and over were too much for him to bear, and not a second later Jake's jets of hot, thick cum spurted into your pussy.
His thrusts became more and more erratic and sloppy as he still came inside your completely fucked pussy, pushing his cum that threatened to fall out of your hole by the amount he had cum in so long. You were still sensitive and the overstimulation wasn't bad, although you felt like crying at the way Jake still kept his cock in you, moving in and out until your pussy milked the last drop out of him.
Jake rested his hands on either side of your body, next to your hips on the table. With his cock still inside you and his body still between your legs. He opened his eyes slowly to find your face calm and serene, your expression a little more relaxed than before.
âJakeâŠâ you whispered, not wanting him to pull away from you.
âYes?â he said in the same tone, one of his hands coming up to push your hair out of your face. He shifted his gaze down your body, the sheen of the light layer of sweat forming against your skin, your hips still joined without the strength to separate. The skin of his chest covered by the marks of his mouth made him smile with satisfaction at his work.
âCan we stay like this for a few minutes?â your request made his heart race, even though it had been racing since the first second you two kissed in that fitting room.
âAs long as you wantâ he moved a little closer, giving you a small kiss on the forehead before placing his forehead against yours. Not wanting to leave your side even after the post-orgasm sensation had passed.
The rest of the days passed like a blur, and not because you or Jake were avoiding each other after what happened. But because time got too short it seemed like more things were happening until the big day. You and he didn't seem to mind each other's presence while you had to sort things out, the tiredness of the final preparations giving way to each other's bodies while all you could think about was getting it over with.
You could breathe a sigh of relief after walking in with Jake at Josie and Heeseung's wedding, listening to the whole ceremony in silence and admiration. Smiling at the vows of the two newlyweds and holding back the tears that threatened to fall. Finally, it was over and you could proudly say that you had been a great godmother. That your brother and sister-in-law had been right to appoint you and Jake to that role.
Now, enjoying the post-wedding party was the only thing on your mind. The glass was freshly filled with booze for the fourth time, the empty hand resting on Susan's shoulder as she hugged Josie's waist, humming the song that was playing throughout the huge hall. This is what you three thought it would be like. Drunk, happy, and laughing as you remember how you met. The time you shared and how much your friendship meant to each other.
âEven though Y/n is my sister-in-law nowâ Josie swallowed a drunken sob, smiling as she pulled you into a hug with Susan âyou two will always be my heart sisters.â
âIs that supposed to make us sentimental?â Susan asked.
âIs it working?â Josie retorted.
It might work because you all already had a fair amount of alcohol in your system, considering how long you'd been here after the ceremony. You still spent time with Heeseung, congratulating your brother and warning him to take good care of Josie. Although he was your brother, your brotherhood with her was strong enough for you to take her away from their house, which hadn't even been furnished yet. With Susan's help, the two of you would take Josie away without a second thought in case Heeseung did something to her. Even though you knew it would never happen.
After a few minutes of exchanging warm, sentimental words, laughing until your belly ached, and refilling your glasses, the three of you broke away from the hugs to go around the party in search of something different for the next few minutes before meeting up again. Josie would go after Heeseung or your mother because she wanted to talk to her new daughter-in-law. Susan would go after Sunghoon, for sure. She missed her boyfriend, who would probably be hanging around the party clutching Heeseung's tie and collecting funny nicknames for the newlywed. Your mind immediately wandered to Jake, thinking that you could go after him and just talk about what happened, maybe. But your feet were killing you enough that you didn't even consider the idea of going out, so you walked over to the nearest table to sit down.
âCan I join you?â your gaze lifted to the person in front of you, smiling when you noticed Haechan's presence.
âSure, join meâ he smiled back at you, taking off his blazer and putting it on the back of his chair before sitting down. You could tell by the lazy sound that came from his lips how exhausted he looked.
âGetting around with your brother and Sunghoon wasn't an easy taskâ he grumbled, his fingers lightly massaging his left temple as he looked around. Looking for one of his friends or even his girlfriend.
âAre they giving you much trouble?â you asked.
âEnough that Sunghoon and Jake made him almost undress three timesâ Haechan said, making you laugh.
âHey, I didn't do anything like that!â the defense in Jake's voice took you by surprise, and both you and Haechan looked in the direction of the slowly approaching voice. At the beginning of the party, Jake looked impeccable. His hair, which he had let grow â because Josie had asked him to, wanting his brother to have an impeccable hairstyle for her wedding â had been slicked back with a little gel, and was now disheveled and messy. The first two buttons of his shirt were open and Jake's tie was completely loosened, but still around his neck. The typical scene of how relaxed he was, but not to the point of getting drunk like you were starting to.
âYou'll have to fight with your sister if her husband gets naked in front of everyoneâ Haechan defended, having his train of thought interrupted by him making Jake laugh. The sound of laughter calmed every cell in your body.
You noticed that he was a little more relaxed, smiling at some of the things Haechan said to him while you switched off a little. Your focus was now on the heel you were trying to take off and how much your feet might scream if they could talk. Without much delay, you unbuckled your heels and took them off, leaving them in a corner under your chair.
âBut seriously, this wedding is just the way you two wanted it, isn't it?â your attention returned to the two boys talking right in front of you. Jake slyly pulled out a chair to sit next to you and his gaze ran down to where you were futilely trying to massage your feet.
âIn every detailâ he smiled at Haechan âHeeseung tries to deny that it was all my sister's doing, but we know he wanted it that way tooâ seeing how much Jake knew your brother was very gratifying, to know that someone understood him as much as you did.
At some point in the conversation, you found yourself looking between the two of them as they talked about how nice it was to be friends with Heeseung. At the time in college when Haechan wanted to join the soccer team and almost didn't get accepted because he had missed the time to introduce himself to the boys. Jake had his full attention on him, listening to every word while his hands thought differently, running down your calf until they caught your ankle. Without saying a word to you and without looking in your direction, he picked up your foot and placed it on his lap. The fingers lightly squeezing the sole of your foot almost made you moan at how good it felt, how much you needed that silent massage from Jake.
âOne relationship I also admire is the two of youâ Haechan pointed at you and Jake. Your eyes quickly met his for a split second, Jake's fingers stopped just as Haechan smiled, and then he went back to massaging your feet.
âWhy?â Jake asked for you, knowing that his concentration was on the pain that was leaving, and how his body was slightly tense from the question.
âBecause even after you broke up, you two carried on as friendsâ Haechan sounded dreamy as he said that little bit of admiration, even if it wasn't true. That the image you and Jake passed on to your friends was false, because you and he weren't friends, you never were. The war footing you two were on was hell on earth and neither of you knew how you were surviving until the present moment âI don't know if I'd be able to be friends with Stacy if the two of us broke up.â
There was a brief pause when Haechan spotted one of his friends with two glasses in his hand. He asked for one, even though the guy wasn't a waiter, but he smiled and handed it to him, asking if you and Jake wanted one too. Denying it and thanking you both, Jake smiled at him and let Haechan take a good sip of his drink.
âHow long have you and Stacy been together?â Jake asked, not knowing the origin or the reason for all this. Maybe it was to get away from the attention his friend had given to your relationship, but he just wanted to deflect it and do everything he could to keep you away from him.
âSince collegeâ he replied, taking another sip of his drink âour relationship is a little crazy.â
Jake knew you were looking at him at that moment, he could feel the weight of your gaze almost smoking on the back of his neck while his gaze was on Haechan.
âTell me about it, I never knewâ Jake prodded.
You didn't know why he was doing it. Whether it was to torture you for talking about Stacy so freely in front of him or whether he wanted to talk to Haechan, who barely knew that you had almost broken his girlfriend's nose in college.
âWell, we started going out after a fraternity party, it wasn't anything serious at firstâ he shrugged, the unfinished drink in his glass now playing between his fingers and a small smile on his lips.
Haechan talked about his and Stacy's relationship carefully, as if the image she had made of herself to him was a version you had never met. But then your ears perked up a little more when he got to a particular moment in the story.
âDude, I⊠Y/n, do you mind if I say that?â Haechan looked at you, noticing that the story was taking a turn that only boys could be interested in.
âNot at allâ you tried to smile at him, almost grimacing at the way it had come out âI'm just focusing on my massageâ you pointed downwards where Jake's hands were still occasionally squeezing your feet. He laughed and continued, looking at Jake this time.
âI went crazy when we started dating because Oliver talked about Stacy's fame and for the first few weeks I wanted to prove whether it was true or not.â
Stacy's fame in college was her cute lingerie, the famous â and hated by you â pink bow bra. It wasn't necessarily fame because she made a point of showing part of her bra with a tank top during training and it had even been proven by those who slept with her. It wouldn't be a fame if they already had proof.
âWhen I saw it, I made a point of⊠spicing up our relationship at the beginning, to prove that she wanted it and that it wasn't the same with everyone.â
âAnd how did you get her to prove it?â Jake asked Haechan.
âOh, you knowâ he leaned back in his chair, stretching as much as he could and almost yawning, but he wasn't sleepy enough for that âI asked her to leave a bra in my closet on the day of the game.â
Jake was the first to make eye contact with you as if he'd expected that answer or any reaction to it. Your eyes sought his and, a few seconds later, you looked at Haechan.
âWhat day was that?â you asked âI mean⊠what game?â
âThe last friendly we had against the University of the Southâ he looked nostalgic as he recalled one of the last games he'd played in a university shirt âI told her to leave it in my locker and then we'd celebrate under the shower, you know.â
You didn't know what it was like because you were disgusted to do anything in the university's men's locker room, but that didn't stop you from finding Jake and going home with him to celebrate. That's how you ended up in the locker room on that fateful day.
âY/n, are you okay?â Haechan asked after a while. He was still talking to Jake about something you didn't even know you wanted to hear right now, your mind was racing. If Stacy had done that in Jake's locker, what story had she told Haechan to make him think he was the only one who had received a pink bow bra in his locker?
âExcuse meâ you asked, taking your feet off Jake's lap so quickly that he didn't even have time to hold you or ask where you were going.
A lot of questions were running through your mind at that moment, for example, how Stacy was managing to cope with a lie that she maintained even after the encounter you two had? Even after you hit her and cursed at her even though she was dating Haechan after everything. While you maintained that Jake was the liar in all this, the big liar was there all along.
You didn't know what you were doing, but the next thing you knew, your feet were leading you in the direction where Stacy was. Near the bar and away from the many people at the party, she was chatting with Susan and Sunghoon as if she had been friends with them for years. Although you knew that your friend and her boyfriend were very polite, you didn't like the closeness she was trying to force.
âHey, Y/nâ Sunghoon was the first to see you coming, his smile showing the fangs that you heard Susan sigh almost all the time. He waved at you without a response, only to see you advance towards Stacy as soon as you got close enough.
âYou slut!â your hands grabbed the fabric of her dress, almost tearing it with how hard you were squeezing.
âLet me go, you're hurting meâ she whimpered, feeling your nails dig a little deeper into her skin as you gripped her dress even tighter.
âSo you've been lying all this time, have you?â you pushed her away when you felt Susan's hands pulling at you, wanting to push you away from Stacy, but unable to put that much force into your actions. She was drunk enough not to be able to separate you as she normally did. Then she looked in Sunghoon's direction, searching for some kind of help.
âLied about what?â she asked.
âDonât play dumb!â you yelled, but your voice couldnât be heard the way you wanted to by the people around you, only Stacy and Susan were able to hear how loud you were talking because of how close you were. âThat day at the game, Jakeâs locker. Tell the truth, you slutââ
Sometimes you had the slight impression that your brother arrived at the worst times, like in a suspenseful scene from your favorite series, or when you and your mother wanted to listen to the neighborsâ fights and Heeseung slammed the door right when one of them told you something very important. And like now, when you were about to live the nostalgic moment of punching Stacy right in the nose, but your brotherâs hands were quick enough to grab you and pull you away from her.
âWhatâs going on?â he asked, standing between the two of you and facing you âHey, sis, look at me.â
âLet me go or Iâll finish her off.â
âYouâre not going anywhereâ Heeseung said. His eyes searched for something behind you and when he found it, you didnât even need to turn around to know that Sunghoon had gone after Jake and Josie.
âWhatâs going on here? Are you okay?â Josie asked as she looked at Heeseung and you, but when her eyes landed on Stacy, some of her sobriety returned. She knew that this could happen at the party and was already preparing for some argument between the two of you, she just didnât know it would be practically halfway through the night.
âI⊠I was at the bar talking to Susan and Sunghoon when Y/n arrived andââ
âOh, for God's sake, stop your shitty little actâ you snapped, almost advancing on her if it werenât for Heeseungâs strength still holding you in place. Your brother didnât move an inch until Jake took his place, standing in front of you and holding you. On another occasion, you would be cursing him and not wanting Jake to touch you, but seeing him there at that moment seemed to make all the difference.
âStacy, love, whatâs going on here?â when she heard Haechanâs voice, Stacy seemed to freeze in place. She looked at him with wide eyes and rapid breathing, perhaps even more than before when the two of you almost argued.
She found herself between a rock and a hard place now, maintaining that lie was no longer hers and she knew that sooner or later it should have been said. Stacy just didnât know why it had taken so long.
âI⊠I think I did something wrong andâŠâ you couldnât swallow her fake crying and the sobs that threatened to come out of the girlâs lips who, with the help of her boyfriend, took a step forward to tell the whole story to your friends.
Hearing all of that from the point of view of the one who had caused you the most pain only made your blood boil even more. You â and the entire campus â knew how much Stacy always bragged about getting with every guy she wanted, with only Heeseung and Sunghoon being the only ones under the radar, she wanted to be content with that. But when she found out that Jake, besides being on the soccer team, was coveted for dating the team captain's sister⊠Oh, she wanted him. It was impossible to get him, but she would do anything to try anything and get with Jake at least one thing. It was then that she had the brilliant idea of ââreplicating Haechan's wish.
The friendly match against the southern university was packed, with everyone on campus stopping to watch the match and cheer for the team. You and your friends weren't much different, wanting to see the boys and supporting them at all costs. Unfortunately, Stacy heard how lovingly you told Jake that you would wait for him after the game in the locker room to get his things and go home.
âCan you get my shirt from my locker? I left it open, you can wear it, it's for good luck in my game today. Then I want to take you out of hereâ his locker would be open, and fitting like a glove, Haechan's idea could serve Jake at that moment. Stacy would put her bra in his locker, let you think whatever you wanted and then she would go on with her life as if nothing had happened. She did that and took off the bra she was wearing to put in Haechan's locker, so she wouldn't waste time because she didn't know if you would throw the fabric away or if you would confront her. She found herself in the unfortunate decision of having the latter option two days later.
âYou already got revenge on me for that day and I apologize to you.â Stacy felt her eyes burning, she was embarrassed for being caught and confronted at a wedding party she didnât even know why she had gone to. She thought that not telling him she was Haechanâs girlfriend would be the best choice to see the faces of familiar people once again since no one had kept in touch with her besides her boyfriend.
âDid you get revenge on her? What did you do?â Jake looked at you with furrowed eyebrows, doubt in his expression, and his lips in a cute pout. If it werenât for the current situation, you would have kissed him for sure.
âI didnât do anythingâ you said softly, just so he could hear. But Stacy didnât listen, so she kept talking.
âShe hit me in the hallway of the north block a few days laterâ she sighed âAlmost broke my nose.â
âWhat?â Sunghoon shouted in surprise âSo our last fraternity party⊠The injury on your noseâŠâ
âIt wasnât a cheerleader stuntâ she continued.
A short silence fell between you all, only the music of the party and Stacyâs small sobs could be heard. You could notice how much Josie was trying to calm the situation and disperse the people so that everyone could enjoy the rest of the party.
Your gaze went up to Jakeâs face and he was expressionless now. The astonishment that had taken over had given way to a neutral look, but it contained something that you couldnât identify. Remorse? Fear? Anger?
âJakeâŠâ you called him without knowing why you were doing that. He was still looking at you with the same expression, not even softening at the sound of your voice.
âCan we talk later?â he asked, his tone serious, but somehow trying to sound a little calm for your liking âIâll take you home and then we can talk, okay?â
There was no way you could insist or say no, just accept it because you didn't even know why you wanted to talk to him at that moment. Everything had hit you like a blow, and just like you, Jake might need some time to cool down and talk to you at the end of the party.
Waving slowly, you watched him walk away as Haechan pulled Stacy away and the others walked through the party until it was just you and him left there. Or just you, as soon as Jake walked away and walked to the bar to get something to drink. So, you allowed yourself to release all the air you were holding, refusing to cry after reality hit your mind and heart.
You believed a lie for all that time. And there was no going back now.
Jake tried to loosen his grip on the steering wheel, but his firm grip on the leather showed how nervous he still was. Spending the rest of the party brooding over everything that had happened, in addition to seeing how shaken you were by it all, made him feel even worse. He thought he would be fine after you heard that he had never cheated on you, that you had believed a lie⊠But he didn't feel good. Jake seemed to feel even worse after seeing how bad you were.
That was why, when he guided you to the car to take you home after the party was over, he preferred to stay quiet and let you be quiet too. The whole drive was in complete silence, with the only sounds being the car engine and the city's movements in the early morning. Occasionally Jake would look in your direction to see if you had fallen asleep or if you were okay, checking on you or waiting for you to look at him too. The only time your eyes met his was when you pulled up to your apartment, Jake turning off the car engine as soon as he parked in the parking lot of your building.
He didn't have to ask if you wanted him to come with you, because you got out first and left the keys with him, as a silent request that he could go up with you. And Jake did just that. From the hallways of the building to the elevator, going to your floor in the most absolute silence. Maybe even more than when the two of you were inside the car.
He turned the keys when you both reached your door, letting you enter first and leading the way in the small darkness that formed inside your apartment. After locking the door, Jake took off his shoes and threw his blazer next to the hanger by the door to make himself a little more comfortable as he followed you to the kitchen still without saying a word.
âDo you want to take a shower?â Jake asked for the first time since the two of you left the party after the wedding. Your eyes followed his figure who was standing in the doorway, leaning one shoulder against the wood as he looked in your direction.
âI thinkâŠâ you sighed, looking around after Jake held your gaze. Feeling a little shy from the intensity with which he was looking at you âIâll make some coffee andâŠâ
âIâll make the coffeeâ Jake interrupted you slowly âGo upstairs and put on something more comfortableâ he tried to sound a little softer with you, but there was still a hint of seriousness in his voice that you recognized. A palpable tension that he finally had the whole truth exposed, he just didnât know how to act after all.
You wouldn't deny it, especially since your feet were almost killing you from the pain from the moment you took off your heels in the middle of the party. You definitely wanted to take off that silk from your clothes, even though they were so comfortable that you danced all night without worrying. But at that moment, your body just needed other fabrics. So you quickly went to your room, passing by Jake without looking at him because you knew that if that happened, there would be no way to go back or simply remember to change your clothes.
As soon as you got to your room, the first thing you did was slide the dress down your body and leave it lying anywhere on the floor. The air blowing against your almost naked skin was a soothing balm for everything you had witnessed in the last few hours. When you got to the bathroom, looking at your appearance in the mirror, Jake's idea of ââtaking a shower didn't seem so bad after all. Turning on the shower and letting the water run wasn't a thought you were reluctant to do, it had to be done. Getting all the dirt, sweat, and exhaustion off your body, both for the fun and for the mix of sensations and how sore and tired you felt. The pain in your feet went away as you squeezed them â not as gently as Jake did â with the help of the soap and hot water. Everything goes down the drain minutes later: dirt, tiredness, and a bit of sadness.
Quickly drying yourself, you grabbed a pair of old sweatpants that belonged to Heeseung and that you never let him take possession of. They belonged to you since the day you put them on by mistake at your parent's house when you and he still lived there since then those pants became yours and no one would say otherwise. For the top, the only comfortable thing you could wear was a sports bra. Without the clinging fabric of a t-shirt on your torso, you wanted something breathable and that would make you feel freer, this was perfect.
âTime to take off my makeupâ you muttered to yourself after you had finished changing properly, looking in the mirror to find your mascara slightly smudged and the red lipstick already coming off your lips. You remembered the tireless hours you spent with Josie and Susan at the beauty salon that same day, in the early hours of the morning. Not even thinking that you would have to take it off at the end of it all, ending up with a beautiful job, even though you felt like you couldnât keep your makeup on for so long.
Taking the cotton and the makeup remover, you moistened the cute object to wipe your face and, before doing so, looked at your reflection once more. Something in your mind made you think of everything besides the time you had taken to put on your makeup and get ready for the wedding. That had been the makeup for your brother and sister-in-lawâs most important day, but it was also with that makeup that you faced the biggest event of your life. With that mascara on your eyes, you were able to witness the lies that Stacy had told you for so long. It was with that lipstick on your lips that you cursed her, and with all that makeup on you stared at people and saw Jake's gaze on you all night. Without being able to decipher, what he was feeling.
Everything, at that moment, was a shock and you only realized that you were crying and looking at your reflection when your vision blurred and you heard Jake calling you in the background. His hurried steps through the room before Jake's figure stopped right at the bathroom door.
âIs everything okay? Are you hurt?â the desperation in your tone, the look in Jakeâs eyes as he turned you around, making you face him. This made you cry even more. Your mouth opened and closed to say something, but nothing came out, just silent sobs as you let the tears fall freely down your cheeks. âHey⊠What happened?â he asked again.
âI justââ you sobbed again âI ruined everything.â
Jakeâs hands found their way to your waist in a matter of seconds, bringing your body close to his in just enough space for him to tilt his face and be close to yours. Without saying a single word, he looked deep into your eyes, letting you shed as many tears as you thought necessary. His fingers held tightly to your skin and, with a small push, he picked you up and placed you sitting on the bathroom counter.
âRuined what, exactly?â he asked, taking the cotton from your hand. Jake wet the makeup remover again and straightened up between your legs to take off your makeup for you. A few days ago, this position between the two of you yielded something beyond what was happening, and butterflies in your stomach hit you at the thought of it. But there he was, with the utmost sweetness and affection, carefully passing the cotton pad over the entire length of your face. Completely the opposite of what he had done to you last time.
âUsâ you answered when Jake passed the cotton pad over one of your eyes, forcing you to close it so he could remove the mascara. You heard him sigh right in front of you, the air blowing against your face due to Jakeâs proximity to you.
The silence that settled between you was strangely comfortable. Now and then your sobs could still be heard as you tried to normalize your breathing and stop crying. Jake was completely focused on wetting the cotton pads, removing your makeup, and making sure you were clean and comfortable enough. Once everything was over and he threw the rest of the things in the trash, he remained with his body still between your legs.
âYou didnât ruin usâ he finally replied, his hands resting on your thighs instead of touching the marble of the bathroom sink. Jakeâs fingers, although blocked by the sweatpants you were wearing, were a warm and comfortable touch. Something you missed and only realized the last time the two of you had a little more contact.
âOf courseâ your eyes burned again and your vision became blurry again. Jakeâs figure in front of you was like a blur when you felt like you were going to cry again. âI spent all this time thinking that youââ
He knew what you would say, but he didnât want to hear it out loud. It was a past completely behind him, one that Jake didnât want to dig up and much less make you remember. So the only way for it to end was when he touched your lips with his. A soft kiss, placing his mouth on yours and slowly sliding the tip of his tongue along your lower lip. It didn't take long for your passage to be accepted, letting him guide the kiss while one of his hands came up to hold your face. He held you in his hands with such care, kissing you and making you feel every little touch.
That should have calmed you down, but it made you shed the tears that still insisted on appearing. Jake felt each one of them between the kiss you shared, each time softer and slower, the movement of your tongues in sync as he let you feel each small slide of his mouth against yours. When you both needed to compose yourself, Jake pulled his lips away from yours enough so that you could both breathe. Still keeping your mouths closed and the tip of his nose brushing against yours.
âYou know what?â Jake said, still breathless and a little hoarse. You just murmured in agreement, letting him continue his train of thought âWhen we started dating, one of the first things Heeseung told me was that you were the most stubborn person I would ever meet in my life.â
âReally?â you opened your eyes in shock, staring at Jake who was still between your legs. His lips reddened and smiling at you.
âReallyâ he kissed your lips once more, his hand still on your face caressing your cheek and sliding his thumb to your lower lip âWhat happened in that locker room was shitty and I donât blame you for feeling that way. I justâŠâ he took a deep breath, his hands finding their place back on your waist. âI needed time until I made you listen to me. I would never rest until I knew I would never do that to you.â
It was your turn to pull Jake into a soft kiss, just to feel his mouth against yours again. The slow, calm slide of his mouth against yours before you pulled away.
âDo you forgive me for being so stubborn? For wasting our time?â
âI have nothing to forgive you for, babyâ Jake took a few steps back, his mischievous smile making your heart race a little faster than usual. âBy the way, I have something for you.â
âFor me? What is it?â you asked.
âIâll be right backâ Without giving you a chance to answer, Jake ran out of the bathroom, leaving you still sitting on the sink counter. You decided to go downstairs and walk to your room, trying to think of what he could have for you. It couldnât be coffee, because the cup he brought was resting on the nightstand on your side of the bed. Running to the bathroom while you were crying made him completely forget about the drink there, maybe it had even gone cold. You didnât care, after all.
Jakeâs footsteps were heard on the other side of the door and, before you could walk a little further and open it, he did it himself. One hand was hidden behind his back as he entered your room.
âWhatâs all this suspense, Jake Sim?â you raised an eyebrow at him, skeptical about all the mystery surrounding the two of you. Jake chuckled softly, walking slowly but nervously towards you until he stopped right in front of you.
âI bought this because I knew I could give it to you one dayâ he said softly, not quite a whisper, but his tone was still soft. Jakeâs eyes were focused on every corner of your face, wanting to convey a little of everything the two of you had shared so far. Or at least try to understand a little of the emotion he felt after everything that had happened.
He pulled away until he showed you what he was holding and, as soon as you saw the only orchid he had between his fingers, you almost cried for the third time that night.
âJakeâŠâ
âIt was the flower of our relationship, Iââ he held it out to you, letting you take it and smell it as you always did with every orchid he gave you over the years. The characteristic smile that showed you were truly surprised, but without a single word to express what you were feeling. While your free hand went to his face and caressed Jake's cheek, the skin against your fingers so soft âI bought it the day we went to see things for my sister. I thought I could give it to you at some point.â
âDid you think it would be soon?â you asked.
Jake took a step forward, getting close enough to be able to hug your body with his.
âI didn't think so, but I hoped it would be. I couldn't stand being away from you anymore with all these wrong and poorly explained thingsâ he huffed, his forehead pressed against yours when Jake's head leaned forward to get even closer to your face. You allowed yourself to laugh for the first time since you had arrived home, holding the flower tightly in one hand, while the other still held Jake's face.
âSo go take a shower, take off those wedding clothes, and stay with me in bed all night.â
âJust tonight?â Jake asked, pouting. Which didn't last long because you broke it with a quick kiss.
âAs long as you wantâŠâ
âI think my whole life is perfect for meâ he shrugged, kissing you once more before pulling away and quickly taking off his white shirt. Both because of the shower he was looking forward to taking and because of the lack of contact with you.
Jake wanted to make up for lost time and everything you two didn't experience because of the lies that surrounded you, him, and your relationship. A silent promise that, even if you were stubborn, you would never stop believing in him again.
© ikeuverse, 2024. do not copy, translate or steal my stories.
#enhypen#enhypen smut#jake smut#jaeyun smut#enhypen jake#enha smut#jake fluff#jake angst#jake x reader#enhypen x reader#enhypen fluff#enhypen angst#jake hard hours#enhypen hard hours#jaeyun hard hours#enha fics#enha fluff#enha angst#enhypen masterlist#enhypen imagines#bay writes.
3K notes
·
View notes